• The site has now migrated to Xenforo 2. If you see any issues with the forum operation, please post them in the feedback thread.
  • Due to issues with external spam filters, QQ is currently unable to send any mail to Microsoft E-mail addresses. This includes any account at live.com, hotmail.com or msn.com. Signing up to the forum with one of these addresses will result in your verification E-mail never arriving. For best results, please use a different E-mail provider for your QQ address.
  • For prospective new members, a word of warning: don't use common names like Dennis, Simon, or Kenny if you decide to create an account. Spammers have used them all before you and gotten those names flagged in the anti-spam databases. Your account registration will be rejected because of it.
  • Since it has happened MULTIPLE times now, I want to be very clear about this. You do not get to abandon an account and create a new one. You do not get to pass an account to someone else and create a new one. If you do so anyway, you will be banned for creating sockpuppets.
  • Due to the actions of particularly persistent spammers and trolls, we will be banning disposable email addresses from today onward.
  • The rules regarding NSFW links have been updated. See here for details.
5.3 Nirvana
"Telepathy is one of the most difficult, yet also most potent disciplines known to date. There are several different subtypes, but the discipline's core consists of linking the minds of several people together. This allows for fast, generally unnoticeable communication; even over long distances. A creative mind can win the information war with no more than this. Due to its computable nature, Telepathy became more common with the recent advent of Archive magic, which can simulate it."

-excerpt from "The Soul of Magic"

The rush of adrenaline revitalised Solano; aloft upon her wings, she surveyed the woods far below. A flash beneath was answered by cutting off Aera's magical flow; she dropped like a rock, evading the lightning strike before catching herself. Oracion Seis' Angel dove lower to taunt them. She slipped between continuous streams of deadly gold like a dancer, displaying effortless grace.

While her body worked however, Solano was busy shooting messages back and forth. "Laxus is still focussed on me, but the rest broke off. I can't hold him for long. Status?" She quietly grumbled about the Heartfilia woman, too; that was a good counter she let them put together. "We really should've buried them under our minions."

"There is no sense crying over spilt milk," Brain admonished; his voice rang a little louder, seeing that he sustained the telepathic link between them. "MacBeth and I are free at the moment. He does not seem like waking up anytime soon, either." Meaning it was the four of them against the rest. Solano's sigh was pulled from her mouth by another drop. Her hair stood on end from how close the lightning brushed past her.

"It would be prudent of him to change his mind," Richard commented without any heat. "I have a Dragonslayer on my heels."

"Same here," Sawyer added.

She still failed to understand where they went wrong. Solano knew the only wildcard they allowed was Wendy Marvell; they had intel on literally every other member of the coalition guilds. And even for Wendy, Gemini learned a lot from impersonating her pet. Yet somehow, no one expected a taciturn and abrasive person like Laxus Dreyar to be sent here. Solano would have taken Mirajane over him any day, too.

Just as she thought that, a lightning lance grazed the tip of her wing; Solano separated it from her back and went into free fall before the current could travel. A new wing grew out under her will, steadying her.

"Can you lose Laxus?" Sawyer asked as she began to ascend. Solano even found time and energy to roll her eyes.

"Don't you think if I could-" another lightning strike, "-I already would have? I'm not you, speedy. If I fly a predictable pattern, like say, away, I get fried. If I slow down, I get fried. I don't have the reserves to use Meteor and keep Aera active afterward. If I could drop Serma on his head, I already would've done it!"

"Alright, alright! Sheesh, girl. Calm down."

"Enough of that," Brain interrupted their mental squabble. Solano was prevented from snapping at him by yet another attempt to tear her from the sky. She could smell nothing but ozone anymore, so thick with it was the air. "You can not win by just dodging. Take the risk and cast Meteor. Meet up with Richard and go to ground. They have Erik, so our fallback points are compromised anyway. Shake or defeat your pursuers and move to the central mountain. From what the locals tell, Nirvana is there. MacBeth and I will go ahead to secure it." A pause followed his orders while Solano began to focus; the link gave her an idea which way Richard was. "Or do you need the help?"

She considered calling their leader and his adoptive son back, but decided against it. Nothing they could do here. "I'll be fine, go. Richard, dig down. We're picking up Sawyer afterward."

"Understood," Richard confirmed at once; just like his physical voice, the mental one never wavered. "I shall create a suitable landing spot."

Solano forewent a response in favour of dodging more lightning by swooping down. She could spy Laxus even in the descending dark, a beacon of might to her frayed nerves. Even the elation of flight and adrenaline of battle could barely carry her now. Before he got to see her flagging, she forced her body to align. Then Solano threw her smirking pursuer a wink and a wave. "While playtime was nice, it's about time mommy takes care of some business. Later~"

The ruse worked well enough; he stopped attacking her while she talked. That gave Solano enough time to put Meteor's circle together. Laxus reacted instantly when it activated, but it was too late; Solano felt her perception speed up far beyond its physical limits. She idly floated backward to escape the wave of lightning. "Meteor!" she shouted, and dashed away. The combined speed of Aera and Meteor sent her two kilometres in less than a minute, right toward where she felt Richard wait.

Meteor gave out first, flickering away as her perception snapped back to normal. Solano was near ground level by then, rushing toward Richard's blocky form. He waved, then braced and caught her in a bear hug. Solano's wings dissolved. "I'm done," she groaned, cuddling into the embrace. Richard obliged her request and carried her into the hole he dug. The earth shifted closed behind them.

A soft chuckle rumbled through his broad chest; the thumping steps felt almost soothing in how rhythmically they came, too. He carried Solano a few minutes before setting her down on the soft dirt. She shuffled away from a wiggling worm with a sigh. Then she leaned against Richard's leg, allowing a headpat by virtue of being too tired to complain.

"They certainly got us good, did they not?"

"Don't act like you used up most of your juice on a failed ambush."

"That is a fair point. Can you stand?"

"I'll live." As much as she wanted to sit here for eternity or make Richard carry her, Solano held herself in higher esteem. She forced her aching body up after another minute. Her friend steadied her as they began to trot along; his magic continously shifted the earth, creating a tunnel around them that closed up as they passed. Whatever Richard did to refresh the air, she was glad for it. Tunneling was such an effective strategy; they got away with it more often than anyone would believe.

While Solano suffered silently, Richard took it upon himself to call back over Brain mail: "Solano and I are together. We escaped pursuit underground. Status?"

"No changes," Brain retorted at once; meaning he was fine.

Sawyer's response was disheartening, though: "Don't come my way, they caught up. I need to lose them first."

"Who is after you?" Richard inquired, prompting a sigh; Sawyer never told them how he managed to send sounds like these.

"Jura Nekis, Lyon Bastia, Lucy Heartfilia, and Wendy Marvell."

"That's too much for you alone," Solano chimed in. She wanted to come to his aid, but that was impossible with an Ethernano reserve of 'No'.

"I know, so...."

Solano already feared the worst when he trailed off just like that. No further comment, no nothing. "Sawyer? Everything okay?" she prompted with carefully hidden worry.

His answer was delayed and almost reverent: "So beautiful. She runs with the wind."

Richard tensed up even before Solano did. They both knew Sawyer's love for speed and the wind. His passion got in the way of survival. "Don't do it!" she shouted into the aether. "You can't fight all of them!"

"We'll see about that. I just have to know!"

He fell silent afterward. The tunneling wizards could not help but slump. Solano buried her head in her hands with a groan. "Oh, that idiot."

She received a jovial pat. "I agree, but then again, none of us are free of idiocy."

"Can you stop being so zen just once?"

"Afraid not."

Solano weakly batted Richard's shoulder, but left it at that. Worrying helped distract her from the mess they were in.

Quite a distance away, Wendy was alternating between visceral anger and worry. Laxus just informed them that Angel ran for the hills; Gajeel's group lost track of Hoteye as well. "Bastard went underground," her fellow Dragonslayer complained, then paused. "Good news is, there's a whiff of Angel around here. They're together now."

Wendy sniffed the air to catch Racer's trail again, directing her allies along. The memory of seeing Carla in a blackguard's hands drove her forward; Wendy had never been this mad at anyone before. She wanted to hurt them. But with the trio from Blue Pegasus having stayed behind to secure Cobra, the only group still in pursuit was her own.

The planning continued around her. Lucy was calling back in that moment: "I can send Virgo your way, she is an expert digger."

"No," Ren chimed in. "Secure Racer first and check the ground beneath him. They might try to free him. Actually, Hibiki, you scan the earth around us, too."

Whatever response the other suit gave, it was not transmitted. Lucy's actual voice reached Wendy's ears, though: "Easier said than done, he is so fast!"

The scent grew stronger in that moment; as if on cue, Racer appeared between the trees and came straight at Wendy. Her eyes widened momentarily, only to narrow as she wrapped her hand in streamers of air. "Claw of the Sky-" A fist rammed into her stomach, but Wendy bit through the pain. "-Dragon!" she shouted and lashed out. The winds exploded from her fingertips like a hundred tiny claws, tearing at her enemy's metallic suit. He weaved past the follow-up kick, grabbed Wendy's leg, and threw her backward.

A rock broke from the earth between them while Lucy caught her. Wendy just growled as she was set down. Jura and Lyon rushed ahead to trade blows with Racer next, but he danced between them. He was no more than a blur every time he moved.

While the men took hit after hit however, Wendy began to dance. Her soul sung as she twirled around herself, attuning to the winds she coveted. A Sky dragon commanded the very air and it obeyed. She spread her awareness, felt every fibre of her being thrum with power; green leaves danced along with her, torn from their homes as the majestic trees bent under her will. Wendy was the eye of a miniature storm.

"Anchor yourselves," she sent. Lucy called for her maid again and vanished underground in response; Jura grabbed Lyon before stomping his foot into the ground and encasing it in bedrock. Racer failed to realise, staring at the two warily. Only when another gust tugged at his body did his attention turn back to Wendy.

Were she not so angry, his sheer awe at the sight of her dance may have made her reconsider. As it were, Wendy let her essence bleed out into the air, made it shine aquamarine as she ceased moving. The moment her body became still, the storm was unshackled; it roared around her, picking up rocks and logs as well as Racer. Smaller trees were uprooted, larger ones defoliated. A mass of wood and leaves churned along the twister Wendy upheld by force of will. Her very core throbbed under the strain, but she kept staring at the tiny body thrown about amidst nature's wrath.

Into her single-minded focus however, Lyon's mental voice echoed: "Stop it, Wendy! Jura's losing his hold!"

She wanted to refuse and hurt Racer more, but she was also growing tired. Wendy reluctantly stopped squeezing her soul to provide power; her storm weakened gradually. First the trees thundered to the ground, then boulders and logs followed. Racer was next, battered but still concious. He vanished in a cloud of fluttering leaves the moment he hit the ground.

Wendy followed his path by the tunnel he left, which was when she realised. "The leaves slow down around him. This is not speed magic at all!"

"Wait, what?" Lyon's gasp was followed by a crunch as Jura dislodged both of them from the ground. He switched to telepathy after: "So he's slowing us down! How do we work against that?"

"We need to catch him physically," Jura commented while Wendy trailed her target's path around the area. He was coming her way, first clearly visible and suddenly a blur. Then he became visible again, just as Wendy felt herself lose contact with the ground. A sudden force pulled her up. She wriggled in its grasp, only to drop back down a few seconds later; Racer kept rising, though. He struggled against the invisible force.

"Got you," Lucy cheered as she emerged, another spirit in tow. Libra, Wendy remembered. The gravity controller kept Racer in the air, impotent for now.

The four of them regrouped while Lucy's maid dress dissolved back into her normal clothes. All four were panting, but Wendy felt spent; she still had some reserves left, but that storm took more out of her than she thought. A glance around revealed devastation within several hundred metres; she suddenly felt bad.

Jura's mental message cut through her distraction: "We got Racer, but he is not beaten yet."

"Yet." Lyon responded cheekily; when her gaze flicked to the confident ice wizard, he was thrumming with Ethernano. A bright blue spell circle appeared over his hand. "Ice Make Eagles!" he chanted, then pushed himself forward to point at their enemy.

Meanwhile, Racer kept up his futile struggles against the invisible cage. "No no no no NO! I won't have it! You, you won't run faster than I, I won't-" his shouting devolved into a screan of pain; Lyon's swarm of glacial birds hammered into him for several seconds. It only cut off when he deemed it enough. Libra dropped Racer's motionless form moments later. He was in bad shape now, to the point Wendy felt a little bad. Jura caught the falling wizard, one hand already grabbing the magic-suppressing handcuffs from his pockets.

Beep.

Wendy perked up, looking this way and that. "What was that sound?" Something nudged at her senses.

Beep.

"What sound?" Lyon glanced her way in confusion, which only agitated Wendy more. "I didn't hear anything. Jura?"

"I-" Beep.

Jura's head snapped back to the man he held onto; the man who was somehow still brimming with Ethernano. A moment later, everything became fire and noise. Already disturbed tranquility was utterly shattered. Thunder followed the explosion, echoing over miles of forest. Spooked birds took flight, the wildlife fled.

And Lucy stared in shock, waiting for pain that never came. A wooden casket manifested around her in the nick of time, weathering the firestorm. She absently felt Libra's Gate close while Horologium manifested fully. Lucy stared dumbfounded at the mayhem from inside her friend; the forest around them was gone for at least a hundred metres, replaced by a giant crater. Small fires burned merrily; most died as they had only ashes to feed on, but some licked on the edge of no-man's land.

The epicenter was worst, inevitably drawing her gaze: a single, charred body lay motionless. Jura's clothes were burned almost completely, all his skin and flesh cooked off. Of Racer, there was nothing left at all. The gruesome sight made naked horror bubble up in Lucy's gut; her gaze was glued to the dead man. Bile rose up her throat, only barely swallowed.

Jura was dead. Dead.

Then her field of view shifted. Horologium toddled around on his stubby legs, freeing Lucy from the grizzly sight out of his glass front. The clock spirit's voice echoed through his inside: "I wish you did not have to see this." His slow, accented way of speaking calmed Lucy a fraction. "Please, as hard as it is, center yourself, young mistress. Others need your aid now."

The clock vanished, but she did not fall. Loke appeared to catch her, Gate opened of his own power. He hugged her close to his chest, hiding Jura's remains from view.

A groan from next to them dragged their attention to Lyon. His entire body was red from burns, but none severe at first glance; Lucy shily averted her gaze when she realised the explosion left him bare, much like she was. Not that he cared, if he even noticed.

"Damn it, why did he have a bomb?"

Coughing from their other side drew attention to Wendy, equally naked but barely singed. The younger girl's sight triggered something in Lucy, however. She leapt out of Loke's hold and grabbed the disoriented Dragonslayer, smushing her head into her chest. Any consideration for their nudity was forgotten; she had to protect her from this. "Don't look!"

A slurred question was all she received in response. Wendy stayed where she was while Lucy cuddled her, both for the younger woman's protection and the older one's comfort.

After cursing under his breath, Loke took stock of the situation. "Alright, you do that. Virgo, get over here and help me put out those fires!" Again Lucy felt a Gate open nearby, but it did not draw on her. Just like with Horologium and Loke, the spirits came of their own power. Virgo dashed away. Lucy heard the ash crunch under her shoes.

"Okay, I heard the girls," Lyon groaned as he picked himself up. "What shouldn't... oh. Shit."

Silence reigned between them afterward. Lucy kept her eyes closed, clutching Wendy as tight as she could. She faintly wondered where her own clothes went, but decided it did not matter. Horologium probably could not save them.

"-going on?!" Hibiki's voice penetrated the haze lying over her thoughts. "Please respond! What happened? We saw the explosion from here. Please, answer me!" He grew increasingly desperate in his calls.

When Lyon did not respond at first, Lucy slowly forced herself to focus and do it instead. She was shaking now. "He, he had a bomb. R-Racer, he...."

"Oh gods, how bad was it?"

Lucy wanted to tell him, but she could not find the words. She just held onto Wendy, suddenly aware that all her friends could have died just then.

"Jura is gone," Lyon answered slowly. A shocked "What?!" followed, but no one knew who sent it. He did not respond to it either, talking as if in a daze: "I think, I think he saved us. Stood between the bomb and us, and it got him the worst. I'm out of juice and still got some burns. Nothing too bad," he added a moment later. "I've had worse frostbite. Lucy looks fine, too. Wendy?"

"I am fine," the blunette sent in response; she was squirming in Lucy's grasp by now. "Prithee cease thine attempts at suffocating me."

"Promise you won't look?"

"Okay."

Lucy let go. Then she quickly turned Wendy around so she definitely could not see; both of them were still shaking. Then Virgo appeared by their side with a faint curtsy. "Fires suppressed, Princess. May I suggest a change in wardrobe? It appears we are overdressed for the occasion."

Despite it all, her deadpan drew a snort from Lucy. At the same time, it made Wendy glance down and squeak; she quickly covered herself with newfound energy. This did nothing to hide her full-body blush in the firelight. Lyon just patted her head with a chuckle. "Don't think too much of it," he reassured her, "it's all natural."

"...right," Lucy deadpanned, "you and Gray had the same teacher."

"You make that sound so negative. Besides, this isn't the first time I lost some clothes on a mission. Better those than my skin, I'd say." He had a point, but Lucy still felt herself grow embarassed, now that the initial shock died down. She forced deep breaths.

Meanwhile, Wendy began to shudder and hugged herself. "Tis cold," she murmured, then sent to Hibiki: "Dost thou possess spare clothing?" Likewise, Lucy began to realise that the only protection she still had from the cold was her magical shell; Wendy must have run out as well. She absently received her keyring from Loke.

"W-Well," Eve responded after a moment. "We do have some spares on the Christina, but she will need some time to reach the area. That much noise will draw in the other dark guilds in the area, too. And I think we need Lucy to probe for Angel and Hoteye? So if she escorts you back, that could give them a chance to slip the net."

"What about Brain and Midnight?" Lucy sent back, suddenly worried.

"We lost track of them for now."

It was at this point that Levy chimed in, voice steady: "Let's meet up and switch teams. Sherry and I can bring Wendy and Lyon back. Lu, Gajeel, and... no. Those two can look for Angel and Hoteye." Lucy grimaced at the reminder they were one man down, trying hard not to look back at the cooling body behind her.

A faint crackle announced Laxus' arrival; all three wizards turned his way, the spirits long since gone. His expression was inscrutable under the faint moon- and firelight. After a moment, he shook off his heavy coat and wrapped it around Wendy. She thanked him meekly, but received no response. Lucy did not feel like saying anything either, but she mustered a grateful smile that was likewise ignored.

Lyon sighed. "Alright. And... ugh, I hate I even have to say it. Did anyone bring body bags?"

The silence that followed was deafening.

It was no different for Oracion Seis, either. Even Brain, who kept himself the most detached of the group, found no words to speak. Ever since the night lit up in the distance, their link was silent. MacBeth strode by his side by now, yet neither exchanged a single word; his adoptive son's countenance was stormy. By himself, Brain wondered what he could have done different; they picked the plan most likely to succeed as a group. Everything worked perfectly until their trap was sniffed out. That had never happened before. And now Sawyer was dead.

Before them rose the mountain they once spied from a distance. It towered above even the impressive woodland. Brain led the way into a nearby cave filled with various plants; life flourished, but his only thoughts were on the glowmoss illuminating their path. This was nothing like any mountain they ever scaled.

To distract himself from his brooding, he uttered a soft sigh and finally sent at Richard: "How is Solano?"

His response came dully: "Inconsolable still. We dug deeper to rest. I can sustain us for a few hours if we do not have to move."

"This is probably for the best," Brain agreed. "We reached Nirvana's position, but have not found it yet." A sideway glance to MacBeth brought his attention to the unusual ascent again. They traversed thick bands of not stone, but wood. This was when he realised why this place felt off. "This is not a mountain, it is a tree with bark so thick and sturdy it may as well be stone."

The megaflora took no notice of his realisation; small animals skittered away from the soft clacking of their footsteps. Wherever he looked, Brain found natural pathways the wildlife created over centuries. "And it is partly hollow. There is an entire ecosystem in here."

He could not help but ramble a little; not only did it distract him from the reality of Sawyer's demise, but this place also intrigued Brain. MacBeth idly pushed up a thick leaf with the back of his hand, studying it.

Unfortunately, Solano chose that moment to enter the conversation: "Why did we give him the bomb?" she asked, painfully reminding Brain that he made that decision. He heaved another sigh.

"I did not expect him to do... that with it."

"He never struck me as the type," Richard agreed morosely. "And we did discuss smuggling the bomb under the coalition base. In retrospect, we should have done so. I should have held onto the bomb."

"You could not know," MacBeth responded this time. He said nothing else and gave no physical indication of the words he spoke. Brain had to agree.

"He is right, none of us could have predicted this. If anything, the blame lies on me for trying to save on our assets. Even if it takes a month to make one of these, we should just have used it." That was what he got for keeping an emergency measure; it only created the emergency to begin with. Now they lost someone who could not be replaced.

Just as he thought that, the ascending branch ran out into almost even ground. Stars glittered far above and Brain realised they reached the top; the tree opened to the open sky like a goblet, wood-stone walls reaching several dozen metres higher. All around the two men spread a glade of tall grass, easily the size of a village; it took him a moment to recognise what his senses told him, the sheer abundance of Ethernano driving all weariness from his body. Wounded animals rested this way and that, from predator to prey in harmony.

Brain blinked, unable to form words at the peaceful image. He needed a while to push back against the sense of awe. "We found it," he sent, then fell silent to study the place more. Now that he focussed, it felt like a bright light to his sense for Ethernano; the magical energy surrounded them in a thick band. It covered the entire glade.

What was more, a guardian of sorts sat to its center: hewn of rough, black stone, the dragon was depicted at rest. Its vaguely triangular head rested on thick legs. Brain could tell intricate details from a distance, even more so as he approached. The stone was warm to the touch, every nook and cranny filled with blossoming flowers and plants that made their home on the colossus.

Even at rest it towered over him and MacBeth. Brain felt like the mighty beast could come alive and lunge at him any moment, but there was no actual flow of Ethernano. It was not a magical construct of any sort. He shuddered, then shook off the faint sense of dread. The only potential danger was the old, black bear slumbering next to a wounded deer. And if this one woke, it had a meal right there.

"What a curious sculpture," MacBeth muttered as he ran a hand over the obsidian. "I wonder who built it?"

Brain shrugged, well aware the younger man did not see the gesture. "I don't know. Right now I'm more interested in where the source of this Ethernano is." It blanketed the entire area, but there was no fountain. No leyline sprout. No hive or generator. "I'm starting to understand why generations of scholars were stumped by this place."

"It could be a property of the soil, or tied to the area?"

"Hopefully not. We lost too much trying to get this in our hands already." Brain's fist clenched, but he kept his mind on track.

MacBeth scowled and finally left the statue alone. He skulked away, stopping only to level his usual piercing stare at his father. "And what if it is? What if we come out of this empty-handed?"

With Erik captured and Sawyer dead... Brain scowled back. "This is unacceptable," he snapped before schooling his features. Not that the outburst upset MacBeth. "If all else fails, we can just uproot this entire glade and take it along. Or build an actual base here. If this bountiful source of Ethernano keeps refreshing itself, we can use it to power high-grade magical cannons, shields, and perhaps even an Etherion of our own." Seeing that the Magic Council's Etherion was destroyed, theirs would be the only one on Ishgar's southern end. They could hold all of the surrounding countries hostage. Make themselves immune to all retribution. The more he thought about it, the more Brain liked the idea.

While he mused however, he became oblivious to his surroundings. Beneath the starry sky he stood, staring out at a territory he now dreamt to make his. Were he more aware, he may have noticed the minute shift behind him. The change in lighting as empyrean orange began to shroud his silhouette. A colour so familiar yet wrong, alien. Greater. It shone from the statue's forehead and fully came into focus.

Brain lacked the ability to sense the change before it affected him. The minute push of singular atoms that struck others in a growing cascade; the faint switch of quantum states across all existence. Primordial might grasped for reality's state of being and rent it asunder.

In the sprawling forests below, Sherry Bendy suddenly collapsed with a scream. Just like every other fortuneteller across the planet, the realignment struck her with a terrible migraine. Worse for her, she was near its origin; a single, bloody tear ran down Sherry's cheek as the subliminal force ran its course.

The moment Brain noticed, it was too late. A searing pain struck his chest, drawing a wheeze. His heart stopped and no attempt to shock it into restarting was successful. He futilely clawed at his chest in what few seconds he had. The pain overtook his concious mind and paralysed him; a moment later, his awareness faded. The founder and leader of Oracion Seis collapsed like a puppet with its strings cut.

The heavy thud drew MacBeth's, or Midnight's, attention. His head snapped back to the collapsed form, suddenly alert. "Father?" he queried, but received no response. "Father!"

He wanted to call for help, but with Brain's fall the telepathy was also cut off. He shook the man who adopted him and gave him purpose, tried to will him to wake. There was no pulse and no human force of will could overcome that which they opposed. When next the glow grew to encase MacBeth, his fate was already sealed. He leapt to his feet to strike at the active statue, but his heart gave out before he could. His shout became a wheeze and he, too, fell.

The glow faded entirely this time. Its final flickers illuminated the two still bodies, one draped over the other. Beneath the shallow hole in its head that emitted the light, scaled lids slid over two slitted eyes. Flakes of dust and soil rained from their neck and head as the primal being adjusted its posture.

Then it fell still and the Sea of Serenity lay tranquil once more. As if its halcyon days had never been disturbed.
 
5.4 Broken Spirits
"Fortunetelling is among the most diverse disciplines; merely listing the various methods to focus this magic would be grounds for a separate volume. The general effectiveness depends on how attuned one is with their chosen method and how well-practiced the wizard. While fortunetelling itself truly lacks combat applications and is often treated with some disdain due to various charlatans, supportive applications are quite varied. I will not assume the existence of such a thing as fate, for I can not prove it, but a proper fortuneteller can glimpse the future or learn of past and present. Unfortunately, the future often changes after it was observed. It is recommended to double-check afterward for that exact reason."

-excerpt from "The Soul of Magic"

"My apologies," Wendy murmured. "I wish I could mend thy wounds."

The young woman trudged along with the rest of them. Laxus' heavy, fur-lined coat preserved her modesty, but it could not cover her shame. Lucy felt for her, currently clad in a spirit dress Virgo delivered from her world. She did not dare ask for another garment, what with how far above and beyond their contracts her friends already went tonight.

Lyon, meanwhile, cared naught for his nudity. He shrugged off the apolgy, too. "I know you'll get to it the moment you can, don't worry." He then proceeded to ruffle Wendy's hair; she let it happen this time, perhaps because his proximity still flustered her. It had done so ever since they started walking, unwilling to wait for a host of dark guilds to converge on them.

"But doth, erm, does it not hurt?"

He shrugged again. "Like I said, I had worse. Ul had us stand naked in the middle of snowstorms whenever we had them. The frostbite was nasty before I got used to it."

"Wendy!"

The shout announced a ball of fluff all but slamming into the blunette's face. She caught Carla with a happy cry and hugged her tight. Lucy left them to it and turned toward the faint light blinking above; Christina arrived.

Once human and Exceed finished their reunion, Carla ferried the coalition up one by one. Lucy agreed that keeping the bomber far away from ground level was the right call. She herself stayed on the ground to greet Levy, Gajeel, and a grimacing Sherry. Only the latter joined everyone up above, though. Lucy and her guildmates kept going, with Laxus immediately walking. "You would just slow me down," he grunted without prompting, then zapped away on a lightning strike. His exit was followed by shouts of alarm, then pain. Underlining the distant spectacle were flashes of light as well as loud buzzing, crackling, and the noises of breaking rock and wood.

Lucy exchanged glances with her friends. Levy shrugged, Gajeel grunted. They unanimously left him to it. Instead, the three continued to search for the remaining Oracion Seis wizards. Virgo followed her call again and searched underground while Gajeel led the way above; his nose twitched every once in a while.

"Wait," he said at some point. Almost an hour passed by then and Lucy felt her reserves dwindle. Gajeel stepped away from them and took a deep breath. Then he walked this way and that before stopping in direction of the distant mountain. "Brain came through here. Midnight, too. They went that way." He pointed the same direction he faced, almost exactly toward the pillar. It stood visible even against the night sky.

"So we know where those two are going," Lucy reasoned. She had no idea if they were already there. "Let's get on-board of Christina now." She plucked on her connection to Virgo to call her back. The maid arrived while Levy called their ride over.

"I found traces of shifted earth, but no indicator which direction our marks went," the pinkette explained. Then she went onto her knees, head bowed without even an ounce of shame. "Will you punish me now?"

Lucy heaved a sigh. She noticed the hint of eagerness in these requests long ago. She knew Virgo was a brat on purpose. At the same time, she really did not feel comfortable with the thought of actually doing anything to hurt her spirits. Yet especially Virgo did so much today.

"I need to talk this over with Natsu first. But sure, you can have your punishment."

"You could both punish me," she suggested without a moment of hesitation. At least she knew how to distract Lucy from her exhaustion, not that being flustered helped much. Lucy wordlessly sent her home.

Right after, Levy's arm wound around her shoulder. The blunette leaned against Lucy with a teasing grin. "What was this I hear? Are you being mean to your underlings?" She giggled, more so when confronted with an unamused stare. "Alright, alright. So you finally gave in?"

Lucy just groaned, slumping against her friend. "I want to do something nice for Virgo after tonight. She deserves it. They all do, really. But if she wants... that? Well, fine. I need to read up on how and what and...." she trailed off, sighing again. "And get Natsu on-board first."

"You think he'd complain?"

"I have no idea. He never struck me as the type to hit someone outside of a fight. Not like Gajeel," she quipped, only to wince in time with him. "Okay, sorry. Too far."

"'s fine," he muttered.

Levy glanced between the two of them. When she rolled her eyes however, Lucy knew something bad was coming. She almost felt sorry for Gajeel when his girlfriend attached herself to him instead. "Don't worry so much," she cooed, "I like it a little rougher."

"Have some decorum, harlot!"

And that was Carla, there to bring them onto the airship that once again hung overhead. Levy just stuck out her tongue, which earned her the honour of being last to board. Lucy went first, followed by an embarassed and thoroughly confused Gajeel. She patted his shoulder before slumping on one of the seats. Somehow, the control room had been transformed into an improvised living space; tired wizards were napping everywhere.

It was already a kind of normal for Wendy, though. The sky dragonslayer toddled around in an oversized dress that swished around her bare feet, seeing to the wounded. She since recovered enough Ethernano to treat Lyon's burns, too. Had she been any less than exhausted, working on his thighs and abdomen would have flustered her again; as it were, Wendy simply did it and decided to have a meltdown about his masculinity later. Much the same happened when Laxus joined them, scuffed but alright beside a few scratches. He arrived on his own power too, riding the lightning up and inside the control room.

For Sherry, she could do nothing. Wendy made a valiant attempt, but the migraine that kept her ally groaning and squirming was magical in origin. She relegated herself to making as little noise as possible on her rounds around the room, as did everyone else.

Then Eve handed Sherry a cup of tea. The moment it touched her fingertips, the liquid bubbled over and exploded across the room. The cup itself shattered into dust. Everyone stared at it, Sherry included.

"What just happened?" Lucy asked into the silence.

Wendy saw the miniscule grimace, but so did Lyon. He reached over and put a hand on his guildmate's shoulder. "She does fortunetelling with tea leaves," he explained quietly. "Looks like something went wrong there."

"I wa'nt ev'n try'ng," Sherry objected before groaning again and burying herself in blankets. Wendy fetched a glass of water for her next; the grateful woman gulped it down just fine.

The desire for sleep faded at this point; Wendy felt her second wind and kept on going. She might have considered at least a nap, but most of her companions were already resting. Not to mention she felt compelled to watch over Sherry.

Then however, a groan drew Wendy's attention to one of the cabins. It was accompanied by a deep hiss. Peeking inside revealed Cobra, now awake and slowly sitting up. He groaned again, raising both cuffed hands to rub his forehead. "Ugh, has anyone seen the mammoth that trampled me?"

Despite everything, she could not help but giggle a little. He sounded exactly like how she imagined some of the others waking. The sound made Cobra's head snap up; his serpent followed the motion. Wendy hesitated under their scrutiny, giving them time to react. But Cobra merely sighed. "Right, captive. We starting with the interrogation already?"

Her head tilted unconciously before she shook it. "Not as such, no." She quickly scampered away to fetch some bread and water from their rations. Cobra was surprised upon her return, but took the food without complaint; Wendy then climbed onto the cot he sat on. His serpent hissed, but she ignored it; they bound the mouth shut, so it could do nothing else. "Let me see the bruise, please."

Though clearly befuddled, Cobra did as told. His bewilderment only grew when she began to work on his swollen face; half of it was purple and must hurt terribly. Some quick pings of magic to his skull made Wendy sigh in relief. "Yonder is a miniscule fracture, but nothing truly broke. Thou were quite fortunate. The swelling ought to fade soon." She helped it along some, but not completely; he was still a captive after all. "Doth this hurt still?"

"Little bit," Cobra responded slowly. "But it's fine, I've had worse." He hesitated for a long moment before following up: "Thanks."

Wendy smiled and let him be; when she peered back inside for a moment, he began to arrange himself on the cot and scratched the snake's head.

While Christina slowly approached the temporary resting place of Jura's remains for collection and would then make for the distant mountain, two others remained underground.

Solano listlessly stared at the dirt wall in front of her; tear tracks ran down her face, carrying along smeared makeup. Now she just felt drained despite the errant naps. The angel sat grounded, uncertain if she even wanted to see the sky again. "You think we can grab the others and go far away?" she asked softly. "I don't care about Nirvana anymore. This is too much."

"I understand your feelings quite well," Richard agreed. His large arms squeezed her more tightly where she settled in his lap. The gesture spent some comfort, but not nearly enough. "Alas, Brain would not agree."

"Then we clock him out and drag him along."

A soft chuckle followed her words; it lacked mirth as much as hers lacked heat. Richard idly ran a hand through Solano's silver hair. "Perhaps we should," he conceded. "But for now you should rest some more. We need you claiming the heavens for any kind of success. I recall Christina in particular can remain active for three days without reloading her lacrima batteries."

"We don't have that kind of time."

"Agreed. Perhaps I should have spent the money to have them sabotaged after all."

She snorted weakly; the treasurer was back on his favourite subject. "You already had an aneurysm over Brain's bomb. Did you really want to die young, Jewel-for-brains?"

"In hindsight, I absolutely should have taken the risk, bird brain."

She giggled the slightest bit. Nowhere near an actual laugh, but it was enough to center Solano some. She leaned back against Richard and took a deep breath; the subtle flow of Ethernano all around kept tickling her senses. "Dig us out," she decided. "We're wasting your reserves hiding here. Let's get up and walking, maybe we reach Nirvana before them."

"It is a risk, but the better option right now. I concur." She missed his embrace the moment he let go to stand up, but soldiered through. They soon began to walk while Richard mused: "Certain capture once deprived of Ethernano, or potential capture upon resurfacing."

"Yeah."

Not that Solano felt much like talking. Her night was especially awful, even without any alcohol involved. Their usual drunken escapades were at least fun, even if they paid for them the day after. "If we make it out of this, I'm getting blackout drunk. You in?"

"Absolutely." And that meant a lot, coming from the man who never drank to save on money.

An uneventful ascent later, they broke through the surface in a small clearing. Pre-dawn brightness announced the sun's approach as they began to wander; the mountainous tree loomed above, clearly visible even in twilight. Their dazed silence held as they walked, avoiding any other clearings. The canopy hid them from the Christina as she passed overhead; Solano felt the bubble of Ethernano clearly.

"You could catch them by surprise from here," Richard mused; he stopped to gaze upward, where the airship cruised along.

Solano just gave a noncommittal hum. "I don't have enough to guarantee success. If they catch our trail now, we're done for." He nodded, but folded only when she finished with her strongest argument: "Besides, Erik might be on there."

"A good point."

With that idea shot down, the two kept moving; Solano's feet hurt already. She wanted to stretch her wings, feel the wind brush through her greasy hair. By the time dawn broke properly, she felt the itch even stronger than before; sunlight warmed her face as she stopped in another clearing. Richard did too, watching Christina in the distance. The bomber circled their destination in a clear search pattern.

"Good thing they aren't bombing Nirvana," she muttered. "At least that part of their plan didn't change." Gemini had been a godsend as always.

However, she also felt refreshed by this point. They ate some of their nutrition bars, drank plenty of water, even found a small creak to wash their faces. Now that she saw Christina's pattern with her own eyes, the desire to fly grew stronger again.

"I think we can rush past them," Solano ventured with a glance to Richard. Her excuse did not fool him, but he nodded his agreement anyway. This actually coaxed a grateful smile out of her. Magic intimately familiar gathered, forming her favourite spell circle. It attached to her shoulder blades as always. "Aera!" And wings followed, pristine despite her disheveled state. Solano flipped back and clung to her friend; slender arms slid under his armpits and barely came back up over his blocky shoulders. Her legs wound around his waist, making her something of a demented backpack.

"Now I remember why I hate carrying you," Solano quipped.

Richard's chuckle was more felt than heard, but she paid it no mind. A surge of Ethernano to her wings sent them off.

The treeline extended all the way to their destination, forcing Solano to maneuver rapidly; she relished it, the challenge and adrenaline. They flitted through a final clearing just as Christina vanished behind the towering tree. Several gaps in its stony bark were lined with vines, creating a network over its entire lower half. Solano followed them until she found an opening large enough to fit, then dashed inside. But she did not stop there; ascending on foot would take far too long. Rather, she strained her reflexes to the limit and kept going at high speed; an entire ecosystem passed by without any thought spent on it. Solano focussed on dodging overhanging vines trying to entangle her; she danced around lesser trees having set root in their giant cousin. Higher and higher she ascended. Beads of sweat were torn away from her forehead as fast as they percolated, but her dress became sticky on top of being dirty.

Despite the hours she spent recharging somewhat, their ascent took everything out of Solano again. Her wings gave out just as she reached a wooden ramp. Richard landed on his feet while she slumped against his back. They both felt the sheer amount of power right above; it blotted out everything else to their senses.

Solano slowly slid down and came to stand. She breathed deeply, the wave of fresh air almost covering her own stink. "I need a bath," she muttered before taking the lead again.

Her bad mood did not last long, though; the offshoot that greeted them was nothing to how invigorating Nirvana itself felt. "Oh, this is wonderful! I didn't expect it to be like that."

Richard hummed in response, steadily striding along. "It is magnificent," he agreed. "I wonder the kind of sight we will have from above. We could make a fortune off of this with the correct strategy." He left a short pause. "Yet this is where the others went before they were cut off. Enemies may be nearby."

"But what enemies? They weren't in this area before. Unless they sent a lot more than the reports said."

In this very moment, they reached the glade that was Nirvana. The black dragon statue immediately drew Solano's gaze, but the words died in her throat when she saw the pair of bodies in front of it. Her eyes widened as all pleasant thoughts fled her body; she shouted for her friends and ran, only to be overtaken by Richard. He reached them first, sliding to a halt while echoing Solano's call and shaking the men in abject fear. Solano arrived a moment later, dread now clawing at her gut.

Alas, no amount of prayer or shaking changed their fate; rigor mortis already set in. No signs of battle, no nothing. They both collapsed here for no apparent reason.

Realisation slowly crawled into her concious mind. After just losing Sawyer, Solano could not keep her emotions contained at all; ugly sobs tore their way out of her throat. She bawled helplessly as her life slipped away from right under her fingertips. The people she cared about all died, one by one, and she was powerless to help them. All she ever wanted, taken away in a manner of hours.

Thick arms closed around the inconsolable woman, her last remaining friend's tears mixing with her own. They spent warmth and comfort to each other, shaking like leaves in a storm. They grieved together for who knew how long.

Some time after the tears ran their course and both slumped against each other, a faint buzzing disrupted their vigil. Both stared upward, where Christina crested the treetop. She rose higher in moments while the two survivors stared without truly comprehending. They rose reflexively and Solano reached for her brimming reserves. Then she hesitated.

"Hey... what do we do?" her tone was softer than she ever wanted it to be. Richard glanced her way and Solano met his gaze, uncertain. "Do we, do we fight?"

His blocky brow furrowed in consideration while the airship continued its ascent. But in the end, he nodded.

"I see your point. This is our only chance to offer negotiations. We hold enough cards to be treated fairly. Nirvana is in our hands. You can bring this ship down, but then it will be a battle till the end." His eyes flicked to the dead before snapping back to her. Expression turned resolute, he made his decision: "Offer to parlay."

She wordlessly slipped Gemini's key from her pouch and opened the gate; the twins arrived without fanfare, each hugging one of her arms. Their attempt of consolation made her lips twitch upward, though it was nowhere near enough. She ruffled their heads anyway. "Take my form and fly up there. No aggression, we're offering parlay."

"As you say, boss."

"Sure thing."

Gemi and Mini touched hands and vanished in a cloud, from which emerged an exact replica of Solano. The original established their mental link moments later. Gemini took off without another word, though she could feel their sympathy.

Meanwhile, a rapid discussion held the Christina's control room. Everyone watched the singular Angel ascend, but the two factions failed to convince each other.

"If she gets up here, she can destroy the ship," Lyon argued. He gestured wildly for the approaching enemy. "Stop being difficult about this, we need to shoot her down!" Wendy and Carla both voiced their agreement; Lucy felt they were still mad about the abduction, though.

Either way, the blonde herself led the other side in this argument: "And I keep telling you, she could have shot us down from down there! She did not! We have a prisoner and the high ground, we can play more cards than just shooting them!" She was entirely too heated, but Lyon was far too stubborn about this; it reminded her of Gray and Natsu, if not in a flattering way.

"What about you three?" Lyon went next instead of responding. He turned to Eve, Ren, and Hibiki. "This is your ship. Are you fine with risking it like that?"

Thankfully for Lucy, the hosts shrugged somewhat uncomfortably; they did not want to be dragged into this.

Laxus stood at the door to the deck with a frown. It was he who broke down the entire discussion, too: "In case you missed it, she just landed."

All eyes turned to the windows, where Angel in the flesh waved at them coyly; she did nothing else, just stood there and waited. Even Lucy was confused about her behaviour. After observing a moment longer, she gingerly opened the door; Gemini confirmed their identity at once: "Hello again. Can I come in?"

"Sure."

The false Angel strode inside once Lucy retreated from the doorframe. She peered up at Laxus' broad form momentarily, which gave Lucy the time to study her. If the original was as disheveled as this one, then her night had not been much better than Lucy's. That was all she managed to conclude before Gemini addressed the room: "My lady wishes to parlay."

Even though she expected it, Lucy was still struck speechless for a moment. Oracion Seis had a history of decisive action; they never negotiated with their enemies before. The others were equally uncertain what to make of this offer.

Hibiki found his voice first: "Does this have to do with Brain and Midnight? What happened to them?" A glance to the main screen told Lucy that yes, both of them were still lying on the ground. 'Angel' scowled, then wordlessly tilted her head; she appeared to listen to something. Tension grew somewhat, but no one did anything hasty.

"Before I answer that," the spirit finally responded, "where is Cobra? And what state is he in?"

"Over here!" the man himself shouted from the cabin he occupied. Most of them glanced that way, where Cobra leaned out of the doorframe; his pet snake's head poked out right above his. "Not doing so bad beside the cuffs!" Gemini relaxed notably, but no one else responded to the quip. Cobra did not care either way. "So, what was that about the others? I'm kinda out of the loop, and sorry I got taken out so easily."

Gemini once again tilted their head as if listening. Lucy understood the moment their opponent deflated. "Brain and MacBeth are dead."

"What?!"

Cobra's shout almost rocked the room. Lucy winced. At the same time, she filed away Midnight's actual name. Gemini shrugged softly; they paid the general surprise no mind and focussed on their ally: "We don't know how. It wasn't these guys, there is no sign of a fight, no nothing. We lost contact last night and now we find them like this."

The trace of pain present in even Gemini's voice made her glance to the screen again; the real Angel's eyes were puffy, she realised. What was more, blotchy makeup had clearly been wiped off her face at some point. Some of it was still fine, but it stood out enough in direct sunlight. Hoteye appeared just as haggard, now that she looked for the signs. Neither of them seemed in any way happy as they stared almost straight at the camera. Lucy knew she should not, but she sympathised with them anyway.

Lyon, however, did not. "You come in here," he started slowly, only to grow louder, "talking about parley after killing Jura and almost blowing us all up? And expect us to just take it and let you off the hook?!" He almost lunged at Gemini, but Levy caught his arm; Gajeel grabbed the other one a moment later. "What the, let go! They killed Jura, we-" "Shut up!"

It was Gemini who stalked forward, eyes filled with fury. They jabbed a finger into Lyon's chest, screaming back at him: "It's not like we wanted any of this! You're the ones who came after us in the first place! If you just hadn't, then nothing of all this would have happened! They'd be alive! All of them! This is your fault!"

Lyon's anger flared higher in turn and Lucy saw where they were headed. She quickly interjected, forcing calm: "Lyon." Her voice cut the tension like a knife. "Stop." When he made to snap at her, she sighed. "Gajeel." Her guildmate covered Lyon's mouth before he could keep shouting, though he was struggling against the two wizards holding him. Sherry still suffered too much to be mad at anyone, thankfully. With all attention on her, Lucy sought Gemini's gaze. "Is that you talking, or Angel?"

The thunderous expression vanished immediately. Lyon fell limp after a few seconds, though he kept glaring daggers at both of them. Gemini hung her head. "Sorry. We adopt the headspace of whoever we turn into. Most of it, at least."

"Hold on a second," Cobra interjected next. He made his way to join them, hands cuffed in front of him. Laxus subtly positioned himself nearby, just in case. If he noticed, he did not say. "What was that about blowing them up? Did Racer use the bomb? Where is he, anyway?"

Gemini immediately flipped back into depression. "He lost and decided to play suicide bomber."

"What the... he's gone, too?" Gemini did not respond, but they did not need to. Cobra could see it in everyone's expressions; he sank to the ground, ashen-faced. "Sawyer, you idiot. What were you thinking?" His pet wound around him as if to offer a hug.

Lucy winced again. At the same time, she began to understand the situation; they all lost friends this night. Parlay meant nobody else would have to die. Glancing back at the screen and seeing the last two members of Oracion Seis again, she could not help but think of Juvia. Of Gajeel. "We can at least hear them out," she decided. Lyon grumbled and the hosts exchanged worried looks, but no one contradicted her. Lucy turned back to Gemini, expression firming up. "We demand the surrender of Oracion Seis. You will be brought to Fiore to stand trial for your crimes."

Gemini studied her silently while the Angel on-screen began to discuss with Hoteye. However she communicated with her spirit, Lucy realised it made a decent and versatile strategy. Now that she knew they were in contact, she also understood how Gemini could stay around them to keep up the futile masquerade.

"We accept." Gemini's agreement tore Lucy out of her considerations. She stared at the spirit, whose expression told her this was not all to it. "But we have several conditions to our surrender." She nodded at Gemini, who listened a moment longer. Hoteye kept talking to Angel while the spirit relayed: "First of all, you will ensure that our fallen members receive proper burials. Second, you guarantee none of the surviving members will be incarcerated or executed."

"Prison is where you-" "Lyon!"

Lucy rubbed her twitching brow. Shouting at her allies was not good, but alienating a highly dangerous group of wizards after they agreed to negotiate, to surrender, was even worse. She bid Gemini to wait and turned to the ice wizard with a sweet smile. "I believe Sherry will not be well with this much noise nearby. Would you escort her to one of the cabins and keep her company?"

He clearly understood why she said this, but also realised Lucy was right; the shouting would not help his friend's migraine or mood any. So after a moment of glaring, he folded and coaxed the groaning woman from her blanky cocoon. Gemini watched the two leave before turning back to Lucy. "Your fake smiles got pretty good."

"Years of practice," she returned absently and glanced around the room. The immediate acceptance of surrender bled a lot of tension from everyone. No one seemed willing to interrupt; in fact, the majority of Lucy's allies were looking her way for guidance. Even the hosts, who had to have some business knowledge of their own. Lucy addressed them first: "You have the list of confirmed incidents caused by Oracion Seis." Hibiki immediately started up his Archive. "As these crimes were committed by wizards, the Magic Council is responsible for administering punishment. What does the legislature say they would get if they confessed to all of them?"

Gemini fidgeted ever so slightly in the silence that followed. Hibiki frowned as he scrolled through the list and opened additional panes with law documents and precedents. "Fraud, murder, grand theft," he mused; his mutterings became indecipherable afterward. Then his attention turned back to Lucy. "We don't have any cases this severe, but several people received lifelong prison sentences for a lot less in the last ten years. Surrendering and confessing everything may afford some leniency, but...." he glanced back at the long list of misdemeanors. Lucy got the message.

"We can not guarantee the second demand," she then told Gemini. "As we are not in charge of the lawmaking."

"The Magic Council is not even functional," Gemini countered immediately. "They could not pass any judgement."

"She is correct," Ren added. "Under these circumstances, judgement would fall to the royal court." Whom Lucy could pull some strings with; she had not kept up with the many people she met as a heiress, but even just Hisui had quite some pull. At the same time, she really did not like causing a miscarriage of justice.

In the end, she settled on a half-truth: "I can still not guarantee anything. No one can. But what I can promise you is that I will try my hardest to meet your second demand."

Lucy knew the moment the real Angel began to scowl that she gave nothing on such a promise. But then something odd happened; instead of denying her or furiously discussing with Hoteye, she hesitated. Her frown slowly ceased. When she did speak with her companion, they both appeared thoughtful.

"We're not taking that, right?" Cobra inquired. Gemini shrugged.

"Your call, I just added my own thoughts before the mistress does something dumb. Lucy is a woman of her word. She is also a woman of Fairy Tail. If she fights for you, then her guild will follow. Right?"

The question went her way with a sly smile. Lucy could not help but chuckle as she nodded. "Correct."

"This includes Blue Pegasus," Hibiki added. "Though if I may ask, why do you seem so focussed on dodging prison? Execution I get, but the other one is a tall order." He had a point, though from the grimaces from Cobra and Gemini, it was sore subject.

"We all have our hangups," Cobra told the room while his friends were still strategising below. "Angel in particular hates being in cramped places. But when we formed Oracion Seis, we swore that no one will ever shackle us ever again." There was a quiet intensity to his short speech that told Lucy all she needed to know. It drew her curiousity as well, though.

"So you were imprisoned before... all of this?"

"More enslaved, but yeah." His flippant response did not hide the fact he clearly dreaded these memories. Lucy's chest constricted, even before Cobra continued: "Brain saved us from the tower. Taught us everything we knew. Led us. It's why we call him Brain."

Had he been her guildmate, Lucy would have hugged him by now. As it were, she felt the gesture would not be appreciated. It took some time to wrestle her aching heart under control. Then Lucy truly registered what he said. "Hold on. You said a tower? The Tower of Heaven?"

Angel and Hoteye fell silent. Gemini's gaze snapped to Lucy, just like Cobra's focussed on her alone. "The one. How do you know about it?"

Lucy hesitated. This was an incredibly personal matter she brought up around quite a few new acquaintances. At the same time, she saw a chance. "A friend of mine used to be kept there, too. Erza Scarlet?" They obviously recognised that name and Lucy forged on: "If it is any consolation, the tower is no more. I helped tear it down."

None of the three gave any indicator of their feelings on that. Lucy would have loved to let them come to terms with it first, but she was pressed for time. "And you said Brain recruited you? How old were you then?"

"Ten-ish?" Cobra ventured. "We aren't all the same age." He glanced to Gemini, who tilted their head once again.

"Eleven for the mistress, ten for the sandman."

"Yeah, sounds about right. We've been doing this for a bit over ten years now."

"I see." Lucy tapped her chin. Children of their background, coerced into evil long before they could make any independent choices. They were adults now and the legal code was clear in that regard, but still. Instead of seeking Hibiki's gaze, this time she sought Laxus'. "Do you think he would speak in their favour?"

Her guildmate grunted, almost but not quite hiding his smile. "He will." Levy was smiling also, and even Gajeel understood.

"Who?"

"The master," Lucy told Cobra, then corrected herself. "Well, he isn't anymore. Saint Dreyar, now." Then she turned back to Gemini: "Very well. I guarantee we will shield you from the worse outcomes of a trial. We will ensure the dead receive their proper rites. Do you accept these conditions?"

There was only a moment of hesitation. Gemini received a faint nod from Cobra and Angel got the same from Hoteye. "We accept," the spirit stated.

"Good. Now we will land so I can shake your hand in person."

Lucy motioned to Ren, who went for the controls. All leftover tension bled away as the Christina began her descent; the fake Angel dissolved into Gemi and Mini, who both settled in front of the window to watch. Cobra shuffled away to lean against the nearest wall, still pale. Wendy did similarly, though she appeared more thoughtful; Carla was hugged to her chest. Levy and Gajeel were talking quietly in the back.

Into this moment of respite, Laxus stepped next to Lucy in front of the main screen. "You're not half bad," he drawled. She glanced up at him, but found no trace of the compliment. If anything, her surprise drew a snort from her fellow blond. "Perfect fit for the guild."

While perplexed, Lucy still had her wits about her. She decided to engage him in his own way: "Right back at you. Good work out there."

A grunt was all the answer she got. The two of them stood front and center as their ride touched down. Neither Angel nor Hoteye reacted to that, nor to the entire coalition force disembarking. The moment she left the airship however, Lucy had to stop and take a deep breath. Nirvana's soothing aura wiped away her weariness; she felt her internal Ethernano replenish at a ridiculous rate, too. So fast in fact, that she quickly realised they would have had a nasty fight on their hands without a surrender.

But now was not the time for doubts. Lucy allowed herself to stretch, feeling refreshed after this long, long night. The deaths still weighed on her mind, but she needed to focus. Paying only a token amount of attention to Wendy's exclamations ("Such a fresh breeze!"), she strode toward Angel and Hoteye. Both met her gaze evenly, but were taken aback when Lucy offered her hand like she said she would.

After a moment, Angel took the proffered limb and shook it firmly. Hoteye did the same a moment later. "I would say 'nice to meet you'," Lucy quipped gently, "but under these circumstances, how about 'Hello'?"

Angel huffed, just as Gemi and Mini landed on her shoulders. The twin sprites played with her white bangs. "See?" Mini chirped, to be replaced by Gemi: "We told you."

"Yes, yes. Shut up."

A doubled "Nope" followed Angel's demand. The twins took to the air and circled her head a few times before flying off to study the dragon statue; Wendy sat in its shadow as well, eyes closed and breathing deeply.

While Levy and the hosts were busy exploring the glade and its ecosystem, Laxus and Gajeel walked Cobra over to them. He offered an awkward wave, only to be caught in a tight hug from Angel; Hoteye grabbed them both. None of the Fairy Tail wizards commented and let them have their moment. In fact, the men wandered away to secure Brain and Midnight. Lucy almost snorted, well aware they felt awkward with the touchy-feely stuff.

Once the three surviving members of Oracion Seis were done with their reunion, she spoke up: "So, here is what I am planning. It may be in bad taste, but if we blame everything on Brain, we can probably get you off lightly." She immediately had their undivided attention; Angel and Cobra frowned, but Hoteye contemplated her words more evenly. Lucy went to elaborate: "If I understood it correctly, he recruited you as children. You had no real choice in the matter, either. That will get you a lot of sympathy if we play it right, but we need to explain your situation to the judges. And, well." She almost glanced to where Brain was put in a body bag this very moment. "He already passed away, so even if we shift most of the blame on him, there is no way to actually punish him."

They mulled it over for a time. "I don't like it," Cobra commented first, to a nod from Angel, "but you make sense there. Lots of folks have kids and can empathise. Think we get let off with a fine?" He glanced to Hoteye, who shuddered for some reason.

Lucy shrugged. "I am not quite sure. As it is, you will definitely not be able to continue as Oracion Seis. I hope that much was obvious?" Slow nods followed, but she felt she ought to spell it out: "We can get you off that way this time, but if you go and commit more crimes afterward, I doubt there will be any mercy. For now, complying with us without a fuss will probably earn you points, too. Because, well."

She slowly pulled two sets of magic-suppressing handcuffs. The request went unspoken, but neither wizard hesitated for more than a moment. Hoteye allowed to be cuffed first while Angel called back the twins and rubbed their heads. They faded away a moment later, then the final opponent was officially captured. Lucy smiled gratefully.

"I was meaning to ask," Lyon interjected with a hint of a growl, "how did you even know we were here?" He strode up to them alongside the hosts and Sherry; his own guildmate massaged her temples, but the pained noises had subsided. Nirvana apparently helped with that, too.

Angel tried for a dismissive motion before remembering she was handcuffed. "Your masters discuss their plans in the middle of a border town, surrounded by hired help. We buy one of the staff members every year, and rarely the same one. I went there myself as a barmaid when we weren't known yet."

Lucy raised her finger at that, but had to lower it. "You know, that is a fair point. I need to speak to the master about that."

"Probably, yeah."

The women exchanged weak smiles, though Lucy's did not hold long. Putting Angel in cuffs was one matter, but there was something else she had to request. "I know I should not ask this, but... would you allow me to hold onto your keys?"

The older woman stiffened immediately, growing almost defensive. Lucy held her gaze nonetheless, pleading silently to trust her. Angel thought for long seconds before sighing and offering her hip. "In my pocket."

"Your dress has pockets?"

The question had come unbidden, but it at least distracted her. "Yup," Angel chirped, "one of the best purchases I ever made. Should have made it self-cleaning, though."

"Ah yes," Cobra quipped, "the folly of stinginess." He then nudged Hoteye with his elbow.

Lucy was no longer paying attention to them by that point. She gingerly extracted a keyring from Angel's pocket and stared at it. Four silver keys clicked against each other, as well as not one but three golden ones. Her mind raced at the implications. "Three zodiacs?" she could not help but ask; Angel was clearly smug. With no response forthcoming, Lucy swallowed her surprise to ask the other question on her mind: "Did you learn any gates without the keys?"

The smugness vanished as swiftly as it appeared. Angel shook her head decisively. "No. I focussed on Aera most of the time. There's no way I could have spent years studying a gate at the same time." What an odd way to phrase it. Taking a year to study a zodiac gate was about all it took; Lucy knew that as a fact. Before she could comment however, Angel kept going: "And just so you know, no, there is no shortcut to Aera. Either you force yourself through the practice or you don't get good at it."

This gave her pause until she remembered the conversation that previous evening. Coupled with her earlier display over Gemini, this painted a clear enough picture for Lucy. "And that technique where you connect with a spirit? How does it work?"

"How does your Star Dress work?" was the counter question. Angel arched an eyebrow at her, making Lucy feel small despite the fact she stood taller.

After considering for a moment, she decided to offer a compromise: "I based it on Body Enhancement magic." Carefully omitted were the months of study put into her work, as well as the substantial help from Zeref.

Either way, Angel seemed to accept her offer. "Mine uses Telepathy as a base. I never had a knack for it, but it mixes surprisingly well with Celestial Spirit magic."

"Oh, that's really smart." Lucy's praise came unbidden, but she truly was impressed. There really was so much wonder still left to be discovered in her beloved discipline. Angel preened, seemingly cheering up a little bit.

That was, until a hand landed on the keyring Lucy still held. She stiffened, pulling back with an immediate glare for Hibiki; he did not even look at her. No, his eyes were squarely on the keys, face ashen.

"Is that Aries' key?" he asked quietly.

The question stopped Lucy from slapping his hand away. She still snapped at him after confirming with a glance: "Yes, now let go of... wait." Her sudden annoyance faded as she remembered the history of that particular key. She still tore the ring out of Hibiki's grasp because one just did not touch a keyring without persmission, but her mind raced. Lucy sought Angel's eyes. "How did you get this key? Aries', I mean?"

The silence and scowl that followed were answer enough. Hibiki's expression darkened in turn while Lucy began to fear the worst. Then Angel began the downward spiral: "Took it from her last contractor's cold, dead hands. Do you have a problem with that?"

"That depends," Hibiki ground out. "Did you kill her?" The other hosts had joined them as well, neither of them quite happy. Everyone was around them, really.

"No."

Lucy was about to sigh in relief, but Angel was not done: "But I would have if Gemini hadn't been faster. The bitch deserved it."

Hope had never died faster.

Hibiki shouldered Cobra aside and grabbed the collar of Angel's dress, pulling her up close to his face. "Say that again," he growled, "say Karen deserved to die one more time."

"Was that her name?" Angel returned sweetly, all but smirking in his face. The mirth faded right after, though; she drew back and headbutted him. The shock dislodged Hibiki's grip and pushed him back a step, enough for Angel to unbalance him. He fell, staring up at the now bleeding woman; Lucy covered her mouth, reminded of the cuffs cutting off any means of protection. If this escalated...

"Now listen here, pretty boy: I don't care who she was in general, or who she was to you. What I know is that this waste of skin prostituted Aries."

Now this, this gave Lucy pause. Hibiki hesitated as well, giving Angel time to push him down with her foot. She leaned down, almost palpable hatred pouring off her entire being. "The sweetest, kindest of the zodiacs, treated like a piece of meat. For money. The only reason I even know is that Gemini took it from her memories. Aries still hasn't recovered even after years. It took me a year to just coax what happened out of her." She paused, suddenly focussing on the guild mark stanced onto his suit's arm. "Right, she was Blue Pegasus too, wasn't she? Just so you know, the only reason I haven't obliterated your entire guild is that Aries begged me not to. She insisted none of you were like this. Despite the fact not one of you stepped up to stop the madness. I killed her, and if you told me she reincarnated, I'd go and strangle the baby in its crib!"

Lucy stood in shock. She knew it was bad from what Loke told her, but she never thought it was this bad. Her state of mind rivalled that of Angel. In the same position, she would have at least broken every bone in Karen Lilica's body.

A faint warmth grew around her fingertips. The silence lay heavy after Angel's rant as everyone grew tense; Hibiki stared up at the hate-filled woman while his guildmates stood in indecision. Lucy's gaze turned to the ring in her hands; the golden key in question was wiggling ever so slightly. Even now, it drew a faint smile to her lips; ever so polite. She gently detached the key and focussed.

"Stars above, listen to my call."

Her solemn words cut the tension like a knife. All eyes were on Lucy. "I seek audience with the ram. Open the gate to heaven and appear before us, Aries!"

A flash of light followed, revealing Aries herself. As shapely as Lucy remembered from her dream during the tournament. She was clad in a white one-piece dress made of cotton and pale yellow thigh-highs. Only her bright pink hair displayed actual colour, bunched up around her neck. A pair of tiny horns poked out of her head and curled downward over her ears.

After a moment of gathering herself, Aries walked forward. "It is true I was not treated well," she murmured while producing a wad of wool. "I do not resent Karen for what she did, even though everyone tells me I should." She then began to wipe Angel's forehead clean, gently dabbing the slowly closing wound. "But at the same time, I never want to go back. Never. I do not like it, but I was happy when our contract broke. I was happy that she died."

Her words were meek, but no one interrupted. Aries met no one's gaze the entire time. Lucy was just about ready to hug the poor girl, but held back. "And are you happy now?" she asked instead. "With Angel?"

A bandage was wound around said woman's head; she no longer stepped on Hibiki after Aries maneuvered her a few steps away. When the pinkette turned back to Lucy, she wore a beaming smile. "I know no Angel. We contracted on her actual name and I am as happy as I could ever be." She paused there, growing the tiniest bit mischievous. "Though I would love to play with children again."

Then Aries slowly shook her head to dislodge the thought. Now that she was done with Angel, she helped up Hibiki. "Hello again. Hello, Ren. And hello, Eve. It is our first time meeting, are you a new member of Blue Pegasus?"

"Ah, y-yes," he murmured, clearly embarassed. "Joined last year. Nice to meet you."

She offered each of them another smile and stepped back to Lucy, who still held her key. "We can not undo the past, no matter how hard we try. I know you will not agree on right and wrong here, but please, do not fight. Can you do that for me?"

She sought first Angel's gaze, who looked away. Hibiki did the same a moment later, inadvertently meeting Angel's. Both frowned at each other before nodding tersely.

Lucy sighed in relief and squeezed Aries' shoulder. She had done what none of them could in that moment. "Thank you," she whispered. Then louder, for everyone to hear, Lucy announced: "I think we all need some time to clear our heads. How about we settle down to rest for two hours, then head back home?"

No one had any objections.
 
5.5 The Reckoning
"Automation of magical processes is an intriguing concept at the time of writing. Archive has existed for but a year, yet the amount of work this discipline can take off a wizard's mind has never been seen before. With proper development, it will exponentially increase the speed new disciplines and technology are created."

-excerpt from "The Love of Magic"

It did not take even an hour to understand why Nirvana was treated as a religious site: Lucy had been tired and aching in various places, but a mere few minutes in this blanket of clean air and Ethernano rejuvenated her. Everyone else felt much the same, most of all Wendy; the Sky Dragonslayer was positively entranced. Gajeel actually had to scoop her up because she fell asleep on the hard ground.

When everyone filed back onto a fully refuelled Christina, the mood had relaxed considerably. Even Hibiki and Lyon appeared more tired than incensed by now.

The first person to speak to Lucy was not one she expected, though.

"You are conflicted," Hoteye stated as he came to stand next to her. She shrugged weakly.

"I am still thinking about the situation with Aries. On one hand, I perfectly understand why it happened, but on the other hand, murder is...." She trailed off, uncertain how to phrase it properly. Especially because Lucy was uncertain she would not have done the same thing.

He nodded, then the two of them quietly watched their respective companions enter the airship. When he did speak, his words were measured: "There are countless stories of callous summoners being destroyed, one way or another. Sometimes it is a more sympathetic Celestial Spirit wizard, but most stories I heard have the spirits themselves avenge their fellows. The case of Karen Lilica ends exactly as these stories always do; arguing whether it was just is a moot point. She did bad and had bad done to her in the end. We should leave it at that before tempers boil over again."

"You have a point there," Lucy agreed. Then she chanced a look at the taller man's blocky form. "But she is not like that, right? Angel, I mean."

"Not at all. Our Solano may be plagued by arrogance, but she always cared the most. Don't let her know I said that." The two of them shared faint smiles over that and followed their guildmates.

"Promise I will not. I admit I did not think you would be decent people when I first heard about you."

"Oh, I'm certain we aren't."

He chuckled. The ramp was pulled back up behind them, but they still had a moment of privacy. "But you will come to realise that no being in this world is monstrous in all aspects. Tell me, I heard the bonds of Fairy Tail's members are strong. If it were to protect them, would you not do whatever is necessary? Even if it meant to bathe in the blood of your enemies?"

The question gave Lucy pause. She stared at Hoteye, who offered a final nod and strode off to settle with his remaining friends. Her thoughts quickly became a jumbled mess as she tried to deny it, only to think of Juvia. Of Makarov and Priscilla. Of Mirajane, Laxus, Erza, Natsu. Each and every one of them was ready to take on the world for their guild. And, Lucy found, so was she. She shuddered at the prospect, but if it were, say, Levy's life on the line?

She did not like the answer she found. Yet that did not change the answer itself.

Instead of dwelling on it, Lucy decided to chat up Angel about Celestial Spirits. From there, she learned several interesting tidbits: first of all, Angel could barely open two gates as well. Secondly, she bought Gemini's and Scorpio's keys off the black market a few years ago. And lastly, most of the spirits were huge gossips. Especially Aries loved to gush about Lucy whenever she got the opportunity. Most zodiacs constantly talked to each other, too. She did not even know that.

"So what I hear is that we can stay in contact over our spirits?"

"Assuming I get to keep my keys? Yes." Angel winced, as did Lucy at the reminder. The older woman transitioned into studying her afterward. "You aren't just taking them?"

"Why would I do that? All is well as long as you are good to them."

"Huh. I think Gemini mentioned before that all the zodiac keys were originally yours?"

"They were," Lucy agreed. "Someone stole them from my family a few years back." She produced her own key ring to show off the seven golden keys. "I spent a lot of time tracking them down before I joined Fairy Tail. With your three, that means only Pisces is unaccounted for."

"Wait, what about Capricorn?"

"He, erm, was exiled just like Leo. For the same reason, too. Actually, what happened to Leo's key?" Lucy hesitated there, well aware that this went back into subjects they should probably not expand on. "I mean, the Celestial Spirit King gave it to me. Did you have it before that point?"

She understood immediately, though her surprise was obvious. "You met the King Unto Heaven? Seriously?"

"Twice, actually." Lucy held up two fingers for emphasis. Angel's incredulous stare embarassed her a bit. "The first time when I requested to countermand Leo's exile, the second time was weird. I went to their world in a dream and he caught me." The incredulity grew, but Lucy could only shrug. "I think it is a side-effect of fainting while Star Dress is active. I have not tried to replicate it and am not planning to."

They stared at each other in a frankly uncomfortable silence. After a few seconds, Angel wet her lips and sighed. "Well then. I'm starting to get what it means to be from a long line of wizards. At least you have a good head on your shoulders." She gave no opportunity to react to the praise: "And to answer your question, yes. I had Leo's key until a few months ago. The gate never opened when I tried to use it, then it just vanished one day. I didn't even realise until Aries told me days later."

There was another pause, though Lucy did not know how to respond. Angel sized her up again. "Anyway, good work there. Leo didn't deserve exile."

"I know."

Perhaps it was her resolute tone of voice, but Angel merely nodded and changed the subject. Lucy had to lead the conversation most of the time, though; while the other woman was older, she clearly had less experience talking to strangers. Levy leapt in at some point while Gajeel began talking with Cobra and Hoteye. Even Lyon grudgingly let himself be drawn into conversation.

Something else that came up once Cobra remembered was a matter Lucy did not expect; apparently, both Hoteye and Angel had younger siblings. He spent a considerable amount of Oracion Seis' fortune on locating his brother, while she said she shied away from searching her sister so as to not drag her into the same life of crime. Lucy wondered, what with how nonchalant Angel was about her various misdeeds so far. She did not actually contest the point, though.

"We can absolutely ask the master to help with that," Levy noted. Lucy nodded at once while her friend grabbed pen and paper. "We'd need their names, though?"

And that was how they learned their new acquaintances' actual names. Richard, Erik, and Solano each dropped the codename without much fuss. When Lucy heard who they were looking for however, she had to interrupt: "I met a Wally recently, but I can not remember if it is the same person. I have to ask Erza once we get back."

"Wally Buchanan and Yukino Agria," Levy murmured as she noted the siblings' names down.

All three of them were clearly blown away by how helpful the coalition ended up being. Just as Lucy began to hope for an uneventful return trip however, Ren spoke up from the front: "Light signals ahead. They're signalling us to land, by authority of... the Magic Council?"

Conversation stopped immediately. All eyes turned to him and then to the big screen; Eve swiftly manipulated some interface to enlarge its contents. The repeating light signals came into view, growing bigger until they could see the Rune Knights producing coloured orbs. A man without the tri-tipped headdress stood in front; the final rays of sunlight made his black hair gleam, but Lucy also spotted trails of deep green. Only two long bangs framing his stern expression were free of the tight bun it had been bound into. An emerald was embedded in his cloak's clasp, identifying him as officer.

"The hell do they want?" Gajeel rumbled. His question was the only one Lucy could make out in the sudden chatter. She wondered as well; just what were the Rune Knights doing this far out, intercepting them in particular?

She only needed a single glance to their suddenly uncomfortable 'guests' to realise. And for some reason, people started looking to her once the initial confusion subsided. Lucy hesitated, hoped maybe someone else would take charge for once. Laxus apparently knew exactly what was going on, but his grin made it clear he happily pushed all the responsibility on her. So Lucy sighed and motioned for the hosts. "Bring us down," she said, but continued to mutter: "Just great, and now of all times."

The Rune Knights held position while Christina descended; no threatening motions were made, but everyone knew they kept ready to respond in case of an attack. Lucy pondered who to bring outside for a moment; she quickly settled on everyone. "Except you three," she told the remainder of Oracion Seis. "You are supposed to be prisoners right now, so we need to at least pretend you are locked up."

"Gotcha," Erik agreed. He then strolled back into the cabin they originally stored him in. The other two followed without much complaint. None of that could deceive Lucy, though; she knew they were nervous. Truthfully, so was she.

The coalition filed out of their airship in an orderly fashion, Lucy somehow in the lead again. She wiped any trace of annoyance from her face, meeting the captain's gaze head-on. His expression was just as measured; he sized them up for a moment, then strode forward to meet them halfway. Unfortunately, the favourable impression he gave was gone when he opened his mouth: "I am Lahar, Captain of the Magic Council's fourth Custody Enforcement Unit. We have come to accept transfer of Oracion Seis into our custody."

It was clear this was not a request.

Lucy inclined her head, offering at least a token greeting despite him not doing the same. "I was unaware the Magic Council finished reconsolidating, Captain?"

"The final steps to reclaim legitimacy were completed this morning," he informed her curtly, meaning he got his marching orders before that point. At least he was cordial. "Now, the prisoners? I assume your... coalition's... endeavour was successful, at least?" Which said a lot about expectations. His clear distaste of the word 'coalition' gave Lucy precious pieces of information to formulate her response. Her prayers for the others to keep quiet were heard, too.

"We were, indeed. One member of Oracion Seis fell in battle, two more passed under mysterious circumstances." Lahar's brow arched, the gesture more unimpressed than intrigued, but Lucy was undeterred. "The other three agreed to surrender under a set of conditions we see to fulfill by transporting them to the Magic Council ourselves. I am afraid transferring them into your custody is not possible."

The Rune Knights shifted, but nobody acted without Lahar's order. His soft frown remained in place as he studied Lucy. "The fact aside that this joint mission clearly violates the law, negotiations made with dangerous individuals such as members of a dark guild, and made by anyone not authorised by the Magic Council, are not acceptable deterrent to enforcing justice."

"What'd he just say?" Gajeel whispered somewhere behind her.

"That it doesn't count unless they do it," Hibiki whispered back.

"Well, fuck 'em then."

Neither Lucy nor Lahar acknowledged the exchange, but inwardly the blonde was torn between screaming and seething. A faint scent of ozone began to tickle her nose as well; the Rune Knights grew more alert, telling her enough about what went on behind her. Now she knew why this would be difficult: the captain was one of the types who loved the law by its letter. And he was already unhappy that the coalition could not be punished, so he would not budge out of the goodness of his heart. Joy.

Still, she had to try. "Certainly you understand that-"

"Delaying official Rune Knight affairs is, as you are likely aware, also a criminal offense."

Lucy stopped. Her fake smile morphed into a glare momentarily, but Lahar was undisturbed. The people behind her bristled as well, but she threw up a hand to bid them to stop. Back under control, she rather put on a more saccharine smile. Two could play that game.

"I was aware, Captain. Surely you are in turn aware that obstructing guildwork is a criminal offense?" He hesitated and Lucy cheerfully elaborated: "The subjugation of Oracion Seis was and is a sanctioned mission offered by Fairy Tail, Lamia Scale, Blue Pegasus, and the Freelance Wizard League. The Magic Council did not veto it as was its right. Any actions taken were made in pursuit of the mission statement and are thus backed by the Council's authority."

Or, in short: 'I can talk legalese too, asshole.'

Lahar's composure cracked halfway through, but he let her finish. She knew he was not happy, but at the same time he was the rare type of professional who accepted when he was in the wrong. His subordinates were quietly whispering about it as well. When no refusal came and the staredown continued, she switched tactics to smooth out ruffled feathers; Laxus thankfully provided exactly what she needed.

"That aside, I believe there is still work to be done for your unit." She had his attention at once. "As you may be aware, Oracion Seis gave marching orders for Worth Woodsea to all their subordinate guilds. They are all active in the area still. Well, actually, are they?"

Lucy risked turning her head to Laxus, who offered a thumbs down. She nodded and turned back to Lahar. "Okay, not exactly active, but still free. We focussed our efforts on securing Oracion Seis and lack the manpower to detain that many dark wizards. If your unit could take care of them in our stead, that would be incredibly helpful." And make a good report, she did not add. He was probably thinking it, though.

The silence stretched while Lahar pondered her proposal. There was no hint of doubt when he did respond: "I will gladly lend my aid to securing a number of dangerous criminals. However, I have my orders." Meaning he could not just let them off the hook.

"I see. Would it be acceptable to have a detachment of your unit escort us back to Era?"

"That... is acceptable."

Lucy carefully did not pump her fist, but her smile grew a tad more honest. She still got it.

A decisive chop of Lahar's hand had his subcommanders marshal their troops, then he offered it to Lucy. She accepted the peace offering and shook. Soon enough they were alone except for a half dozen Rune Knights; they followed the coalition force on board somewhat stiffly, but behaved themselves well enough. The squad leader made certain to check the prisoners' handcuffs, but that was it. Christina ascended once again and everyone relaxed. Lyon even managed to drag their tagalongs into conversation after a while.

"Nice one," Levy praised once they all settled together. "I really liked how you talked around the guy."

"I had no idea you were this adept at negotiation," Wendy added; after napping some more, she seemed concious enough to pick more common words. Gajeel seemed to agree with his fellow Dragonslayer, too.

Lucy just rolled her eyes at that, then tossed her hair imperiously. "People keep forgetting that I am the daughter of a man who earned a fortune in less than twenty years. I received at least some of his smarts, you know? Not to mention that he raised me to have a silver tongue to go with the golden hair Mama gave me." She dropped the pose under giggles from the two blunettes. "Just because I do not particularly like doing it, does not mean I am bad at it."

The journey took its course from there on. In the two days they travelled, Hibiki already contacted various people via Archive. It turned out Blue Pegasus began installing experimental Lacrima relays to reach various places across Fiore. Thanks to that and Lucy priming her potential new friends for the ordeal ahead, everyone was confident when they disembarked. She still paused at the sight of Castle Era, rebuilt in all its glory if not greater still.

Makarov and Erza already expected them, though. Both held faint smiles as they greeted everyone. Masters Bob and Ooba soon joined them as well. The Rune Knight detachment moved out to report.

Unfortunately for Lucy, this was not the end of it. Seven days full of hearings, taking statements, and gathering evidence followed. The three captives clearly impressed the councillors by complying without so much as a word of complaint.

At least there was a silver lining to the exhausting legal work; after a conversation with Erza, she could confirm that the Wally she remembered meeting was the same person Hoteye, or Richard, sought to find. He became emotional upon hearing this, happily enclosing Erza in a big hug. The surprised knightess easily agreed to see about contacting Wally.

Similar matters went for Makarov; his demeanour toward Oracion Seis softened considerably as soon as he heard of their past. He immediately went to work swinging his half century of connections and wisdom into the hearings; she knew for a fact more than a few meetings took place behind closed doors, too. Until on the sixth day, he spoke in his official function as Wizard Saint during the final hearing.

"Dear Councillors," he said, "we are all wizards. Many of us are parents, or grandparents even. Many of us are and were members of guilds. We shepherd those under our care, our children, so they can become the best they can be. Before you stand three adult wizards today, yes. But as the overwhelming proof we gathered reveals, they were but children when their dark dealings began. Children, who could not tell right from wrong for lack of anyone to teach them the right way. Their misdemeanours are many, yet they were not borne of malice, but of misdirection. It is my honest belief that punishing them harshly would be a disservice to this institution; rather, as their elders, it is our duty to show them the right path. Their willing surrender and collaboration with this Council speak of contritition. So I say let us give them a chance to put their valuable skills, learned in the pursuit of nefarious goals, to a better use."

He received applause from many members of the audience as he hobbled from the stand. His last line had Lucy cackle on the inside, though. The sly old man somehow managed to appeal to the Council's greed in the same breath that he appealed to its kindness.

However, the judgement inevitably came. On the seventh day, all three members of the now defunct Oracion Seis stood in the stands. The audience was chock full, with front row seats for the coalition group plus Makarov and the two masters. Lucy could not help but fidget, too nervous despite the many assurances all would be well. Solano, Erik, and Richard were even worse off, but hid it admirably.

Chairman Org stepped forward to announce the Council's decision. He was a stern old man full of wrinkles, but he still stood tall and proud in his fine robes. Lucy knew he never held much love for Fairy Tail in particular, but so far he acted fairly wherever people could see.

"After much deliberation," he began, voice echoing around the entire courtroom, "this Council has reached consensus." It was a severe announcement, bereft of emotion. "The individuals known as Cobra, Angel, and Hoteye, real names Erik with no last name given, Solano Agria, and Richard Buchanan, are found guilty of all charges." He left a pause as his words settled. One could have heard a pin drop in the ensuing silence. "However, due to the proven fact all three were groomed into committing their heinous deeds, majority of the blame is put on the individual known as Brain.

"As such, while the crimes committed are too severe to be forgiven without punishment, leniency shall be granted."

Lucy released the breath she had been holding and wiped away a tear. Org did not care for any such thing and continued: "We hereby sentence all three of you to ten years of labour on probation, according to your personal abilities."

This time he left an actual pause for breath, but his stern gaze told everyone he was not quite done. Lucy's tension bled away regardless, she knew she got everything she wanted.

"Richard Buchanan will be put to work as a member of Fiore's royal exchequer. Erik without a given name shall join this Council's Rune Knights as junior interrogator. And Solano Agria will enlist in officer schooling to become an instructor for Fiore's royal air wing. So it was decreed, and so it shall be."

The clack of his staff hitting the stone he stood on reverberated around the room. The sentencing was complete.

Lucy smiled brightly, hands clasping both Levy's to her right and Makarov's to her left. Erik, Richard, and Solano all slumped in relief by now, exchanging faint smiles with each other. Erik made some kind of comment, but the chatter around the room drowned it out.

They reconvened with the three in the courtyard. Solano and Erik still appeared in shock, but Richard immediately addressed Makarov's group as they arrived: "Thank you, truly. I doubt any of us ever expected, well, any of this a week ago. We greatly appreciate all you did for us." Though he spoke to the erstwhile master, his words were clearly meant for all of them.

Makarov waved him off immediately. He threw the lot of them a sly smile before whispering conspiratorially: "As it turns out, half the councillors already leaned toward implementing more productive sentences than prison time. Rehabilitating delinquents instead of locking them away is both kinder and more economic. You three are a test run of these proposed changes," he told them kindly. "Don't mess it up, children."

All three snapped to attention for a moment and voiced their agreement; at least Solano was clearly embarassed once she realised what she did. Lucy hid her smile and was about to comment when another, unfamiliar voice cut into their bubble.

"Why, what a surprise. Several guild masters, a semi-legal coalition, remnants of a dark guild." The drawl belonged to an imposing, dark-haired man in a fine black suit. Lucy had never seen him before.

Makarov grimaced. "Ivan," he greeted tersely. The suit inclined his head in turn.

"Father."

That... explained quite a bit. He did not look like Makarov at all. Or like Laxus, for that matter. Lucy glanced to her guildmate, who was unimpressed by his father's arrival. The two exchanged nods, then Ivan Dreyar's gaze traced the rest of them; it felt cold, made Lucy shiver for as long as those eyes rested on her. He stopped on their youngest member, though.

"And young Wendy. I assume you were up to the task?"

"Ah, yes, sir." The blunette fidgeted under the sudden attention; she forged on bravely to make an inquiry of her own: "I was unaware thou were related to Master, erm, Saint Dreyar."

Ivan gave a minute shrug. "There was never a need to mention it. Regardless, what I am actually here about." He produced an envelope with documents, freely offered to Makarov. "We do not see eye to eye and never will, but we ought to get along at least, no?" The older man grimaced again while the younger smirked. "A little bird told me you were asking questions about someone. One Yukino Agria, age fifteen, who coincidentally applied with the Freelance Wizard League."

All animosity was forgotten the moment her name fell. Solano stiffened while Laxus shuffled his feet; Lucy had to shake her head at the games this family played. Ivan was either unaware of all this or did not care. He simply kept monologuing at the group: "I rejected her application because she was not good enough to go solo, then told her to practice and come back next year."

With Makarov and Solano still speechless, Wendy took the opportunity to interject: "Pardon, but why was she deemed ineligible? Mine own permit, I obtained near five years past after all."

Ivan turned without hesitation, one brow arched. "You, my dear, are a Dragonslayer. Only a fool would think you unfit, even at such a tender age. Not to mention that you received clear limitations on the types of missions you were allowed on until you were older, as do all our junior freelancers." He paused momentarily to study Wendy. "On that note, have you kept up with your studies?"

"In a sense, yes?"

His unamused look had the young woman wilt. She averted her gaze. "Tis not a simple matter to receive or afford tutoring."

"Which is exactly why the league offers a number of educational tomes for self-study to members like yourself," Ivan drawled. "I expect you to make use of them."

A mumbled "Yes, sir" was all the response Wendy gave. She absently scratched the back off her head and shook some dust out of her hair. Ivan nodded, mimed an almost mocking bow toward Makarov, and made to leave in the renewed silence. He only stopped once more the moment he stood level with Laxus. "It seems you have a type, son."

Laxus heaved a sigh while his chuckling father left. Lucy had no idea what kind of in-joke she just missed; right now, with not one but two grumbling Dreyars in her vicinity, she decided she rather not pry.

"So," Erik ventured carefully, one hand on his serpent Cubelios' head. "Did that really just happen? Just like that?"

"Yes," Makarov finally muttered. He was clearly as confused as the rest of them. "I suppose it has." He flipped through the documents his son provided. "At least that saves me some work. There is still a bit to do, no?"

He was right on that. The day after the trial's conclusion, the burials for Jura, Brain, Midnight, and Racer were held. The first one was separated from the other three, but Lucy attended both occasions. In fact, her friends followed her example; only Wendy took a pass, citing that she felt unwell and needed to check up on her caretaker, Quelaan. She was the only one, though; even Lyon let himself be prodded into attending. He became more somber once he realised there was no one but them and the three who lived to mourn the fallen of Oracion Seis.

They were a close-knit group without doubt. Lucy felt awkward, what with her never having spoken a single word to any of the deceased, but she stayed anyway. If nothing else, Solano, Erik, and Richard all appreciated the gesture. They invited the lot of them to a mostly improvised wake, consisting of stories and copious amounts of alcohol.

Lucy limited herself to a single drink that evening, mainly because her new friends clearly had no intention to stop before they dropped. Her guildmates and other allies indulged some more, but they kept away from the deep end. The spirits helped loosen some of the tension, though; when dawn broke, everyone had had some interaction with everyone. Be it conversation or a drunken fistfight that ended in another round being poured. In fact, Lucy felt that Lyon and Erik actually ended up as some sort of friends after that point.

Next morning, only Richard saw them off at the train station, somehow still coherent despite it all. They would soon meet again anyway, but it was a kind gesture. What was at the end of that ride envigorated Lucy, though. The moment she stepped off the train, she was surrounded by about half of her guild; Natsu greeted her with a big hug while Happy flew circles around the pair. Mirajane, Elfman, Cana, Gray, Juvia, everyone had come to welcome them back.

Lucy was home now, well and truly. But at the same time, even as Natsu's cheer brightened her own spirit and people demanded they tell what happened, she felt oddly melancholic. The image of Jura's charred remains kept flickering before her mind's eye every once in a while; it became less oppressive as the days passed, but Lucy doubted it would fade entirely. She could relax for now, but she also knew she lost something along the way.
 
5.6 Water of the Womb
"Aligned around the Celestial Throne of Stars, the twelve zodiacs stand as follows: Leo, Aries, Aquarius, Pisces, Libra, Taurus, Scorpio, Gemini, Capricorn, Cancer, Sagittarius, and Virgo. The twelve dukes and duchesses form their world's high council, overruled only by his majesty the Celestial Spirit King. Even I know not his name, for he existed since Earthland was yet unformed. His knowledge and wisdom far surpass our own, his thoughts are unfathomable, but he is benign toward humanity.

To call upon his majesty is possible in two ways; the direct method is to open all twelve zodiac gates at once and request an audience. A feat that most wizards can only ever dream of. The other method is easier but carries a cost: one has to forsake access to a zodiac gate whose owner the caster is contracted with."

-excerpt from "The Soul of Magic"

The face looking back at her in the mirror was at rest. All in all, Yukino felt content with herself; her cheeks lost their pudginess, now that she was almost sixteen. She grew out fully, she had nice tits, nice hips, and, if her friends could be believed, a nice ass. Her black tank top contrasted with ever so faintly tanned skin; the best part about it was the white skull motif spanning its entire front, though.

She tried for a smile, but her reflection just looked unnatural so she dropped it. Instead, Yukino scowled; that fit her much better.

"Are you done in there, dear?" a kind voice called from behind the door, startling her. "You have visitors today."

"Just a moment!" she called back. Her white hair was pulled into a simple ponytail, then she slipped into worn and patched shorts, dark blue rather than black. Yukino gave herself one last once-over in the mirror, but shook her head. "And it's not like it matters," she added while opening the door. The matron wore a sad smile, though she encouraged her regardless.

"Don't be so negative, Yukino. You are a wonderful girl, if a little rough around the edges." Her lips quirked upward and she let herself be led by the arm. "Everything is possible. Those two look like a young couple to me. Good luck, dear."

'No need for luck', she did not say. Not to the only person worthy of respect in this place. Nonetheless, it really did not matter; no one would adopt her at fifteen, they always wanted the younger children. Yukino made her peace with that and counted the days until she was old enough to leave on her own.

The first thing she noticed upon entering was that this couple were two women. One a stunning blonde that she absolutely recognised, the other with white hair like her own. Only longer, bound tightly, and hiding most of her face. Not that Yukino would have noticed much about her, she was still busy staring at the reknowned wizard. She blinked several times, rubbed her eyes, but it was still the same person.

Meanwhile, Lucy Heartfilia studied her with a dazzling smile. Whatever she thought, Yukino could not tell. She was too busy gaping at her anyway.

In the end, Lucy broke the silence: "Hello, Yukino. Would you sit with us?"

She did as asked without so much as a thought. Her mind still whirled around the fact a famous wizard came all the way to Crocus to talk to her. But with that also came realisation and a pang of disappointment. "You aren't here to adopt anyone, are you?"

"Not as such," Lucy admitted, "though I did say as much to the matron." Her momentary confusion turned to understanding as soon as Yukino began to scowl. "Ah, sly old people again. I see."

"...what?"

The older woman made to explain, but stopped herself with a glance to the quiet third person in the room. "I will get to that later," she offered instead. Then she nudged whoever she brought. "How about you say something now?"

"I... alright, fine." The other woman's voice was richer than Lucy's, deeper. Her hesitation finally drew Yukino's attention away, just as the curtain of white shifted. For a moment she felt like staring into a weird sort of mirror again; the person looking back at her could be mistaken for her sister.

For some reason, her gaze flickered around before focussing on the younger woman properly. "Hello, Yukino," she began haltingly.

"...hello?"

Where before it had been confusing, the atmosphere quickly turned awkward. Annoyingly, Yukino did not know why; she did not know this person. She was certain of it, but something niggled at the back of her mind. "Do I know you?"

For some reason, that made the older woman slump. She heaved a faint sigh and rubbed her face. "Figures you don't remember, you were barely three." She hesitated a moment longer while Yukino stared at her in abject confusion. Then, with another nudge from Lucy, she explained: "I am Solano, your sister."

"Hah," she deadpanned instinctively. "Very funny."

When neither of them smirked or laughed, her incredulity only grew. "You're serious? You're actualy serious?" She still waited for the punchline. "I have a sister?" Solano shuffled awkwardly under Yukino's scrutiny; a familiar anger began to well up as the information settled. "Where were you?" she asked quietly.

Solano made to speak, but faltered. She averted her gaze, displaying all the guilt Yukino needed to see. "Where were you?" she asked again, more forcefully. "I was right here all these years and now you come in here telling me this?" She still had family, but right now it did not make her happy. "Where were you ten years ago, huh?" Only more silence was the answer. "Why now? Is it suddenly convenient to have little Yukino know you exist?!"

The clearing of a throat made her attention snap back to Lucy. "And you? What the fuck are you doing here, then? What do you have to do with this?!"

The blonde raised her hands in a placating manner. "Please, at least hear her out. I know this is a lot to take in, but-" "No but," Yukino growled back, almost flipping the table as she stood. "You talk like you get everything, but you don't have any idea at all! Get out, leave me alone!"

Contrary to her demand, it was Yukino who fled. Her chest constricted as she turned and ran, right back up the stairs and through the first door she found. It turned out to be a closet, dark and dusty; the place fit her mood well enough. Yukino settled against the wall and hid her face in her hands; ugly tears forced their way through, a mixture of emotions bubbling all over at once. She had family, an older sister. A sibling who could have gotten her out of here at any time in the last decade. A sibling who could have gotten her out now, if she had not been so gods damned stupid. She lost her temper and blew the best chance she had all her life, and somehow Yukino did not care that she did. It felt right and wrong at the same time!

She did not know how much time passed until a soft knock disrupted her pity party. A quiet "Go away" was all she had for the intruder, but they were not deterred. Rather the opposite, seeing that the door opened with a faint creak. Yukino glared, but somehow Lucy was unimpressed. She produced a ball of soft light and approached slowly, then sat down by her side. Once it became clear the other woman would not leave, Yukino hugged herself and ignored her.

"I am terribly sorry for putting you on the spot like I did," Lucy began. "I honestly do not know what I expected from this approach, but I figured it would be easiest to tear off the band-aid quickly." She left a pause for Yukino to interject, but was left without response. "But despite all of this, I do know how you feel. At least in part." The younger woman could not help but become attentive; now that her anger subsided into a faint simmer, that spark of fascination came back to the forefront. "Being distant to your family, feeling betrayed. I know these feelings."

She chanced a look, only to find Lucy lost in reminiscence. It did not last long before she shook it off, somehow. Their eyes met momentarily, but Yukino looked away. She immediately felt embarassed about being caught and angry about being embarassed, but the other woman spoke up in that moment: "You wanted to know why I was here? Well, I am acting as Solano's parole officer. She is not allowed anywhere without supervision."

That gave Yukino pause. Her head rose almost of its own volition. Lucy, knowing she had her attention, continued to explain softly: "Now that I met you, I realise I should have led with this. It is generally not a good idea, I figured we should establish a baseline first. But now, oh well. The only reason Solano even has a chance to take you away from here is that I whispered a few words in the right ears. And her exemplary conduct during her trial... which, erm, I coached her on."

She did not say it, but Yukino caught her meaning anyway. "My sister is a criminal," she muttered, baffled. Lucy nodded.

"Do you read the news?"

"Yeah. But only the Weekly Sorcerer."

"Ah. And the next issue is tomorrow. You will probably see some mention of it then, though I doubt they will print any names or pictures. She got acquitted two days ago." When Yukino kept hanging on her lips, Lucy went on with her explanation without prompting: "She is, was, a dark wizard. The fact I somehow kept her out of prison or worse still baffles me. It's why she could never come for you, either. She had no idea where you went and once she could start looking, her criminal record was the length of her arm."

It soothed Yukino somewhat, to know it was not some whimsy that kept her sister away. At the same time, her sister was a criminal. And a bad one at that. A really bad one. Yet a Fairy Tail wizard stuck up for her for some reason? "I don't get it," she muttered. "Aren't you supposed to, y'know, fight dark wizards? Isn't that what Fairy Tail does?"

Lucy absently rubbed her thumb over the pink guild mark on her other hand. "It is what we do," she confirmed. "What we did. But that particular mission did not go well. We lost good people on both sides and once it was all said and done, well, I ended up talking to them. Solano is maladjusted, she is not a good person, but she wants to be. And if nothing else, the first and only thing she asked of us is to help find you."

She hesitated there. A hand softly touched Yukino's shoulder and, seeing that she did not shake it off, squeezed gently. "I am not asking you to just forgive her. But could you at least give her a chance to explain?"

She did not want to. In truth, Yukino wanted to bury herself in her bed for the next day. Or aimlessly run around Crocus. But at the same time, she was intrigued and perhaps even a little hopeful. So she nodded and stood. Lucy followed, then held her back and drew a handkerchief. "Just a moment," the older woman requested as she cleaned Yukino's face. The clucking had her bristle and blush in equal measure, but she allowed it this once. She made a quick stop at the bathroom to wash up, too. It helped, but failed to hide the puffiness around her eyes entirely.

"Great first impression I'm making," Yukino muttered mostly to herself. By the way Lucy giggled, she was still heard.

Each step taking her closer to the person she wanted to talk to the least and the most, Yukino grew a smidgen more tense. She wanted to ask more questions about Fairy Tail, but her mouth was dry. Words failed her.

Solano was where they left her, slumped forward and playing with her hair. Her head turned the moment she heard their steps, expression brightening when she saw Yukino return. She was so expressive, the younger sister realised.

She slowly bent down to right the chair she pushed over earlier, then sat on it. Lucy held herself in the background while the sisters stared at each other. Both were tongue-tied, but Yukino somehow managed to swallow the lump in her throat. "Why did you even leave?" she asked first. The burning question in her mind. "I don't remember you at all. Why did you go? and where?"

Solano's first response was a heavy sigh. "I don't like talking about it," she prefaced. "Honestly, I'm happy that the memories of that day are starting to fade. It was cultists of some sort. Zeref cultists, I think. They came for our village in the middle of night. Killed the adults, abducted all the children to use as slave workers in their tower."

She shook herself and left a long pause during which Yukino had to process what she just heard. She failed. A soft "Huh?" was all she could respond with. Solano grimaced.

"Once people realised what was happening, most who could fight were already dead. Maybe they bought some of the guards, too. I don't know, I don't care. With Ma and Pa dead just outside the house, I slammed the door in their faces. Then I... yeah, I ran upstairs and hid you in the closet, and ran back down to lead them away. They caught me anyway, but hey, it worked."

She shrugged weakly while Yukino gaped at her. There was not even a hint of a memory to any of that. How could she have forgotten such a night? How could she believe such a night actually happened?

A pleading look went to Lucy, who met her evenly. "The timeline fits," she answered the unspoken question. "One of my guildmates was held in the same place."

Yukino tried to visualise the entire mess without much success. Things like these did not happen to ordinary people like herself. How had she gotten tangled up in such a mess? "And how did you become a dark wizard from that?" her mouth asked instead. Solano threw a scathing look Lucy's way, but the other woman only shrugged.

"A man came to the tower after it changed hands," she told Yukino in the end. "Brain is what we called him. That was a year or so after I was captured. He was looking for recruits. When I got the offer, I jumped at the chance to get out of there. After that, well." Solano made a vague motion that told Yukino nothing, but she nodded regardless.

They both stewed in the tale at this point. Solano had grown somewhat tense while Yukino's incredulity kept the awe at bay. "And now you're here," she finished lamely.

"Yes, now I'm here."

Solano fidgeted, not that Yukino noticed. "It's," she began, then paused to wet her lips again. "I already got a place of my own. It's not big, but I figured, if you want to...." She trailed off again, leaving the offer standing in the room.

Yukino wanted to say yes. She wanted it so bad, but at the same time it still hurt. Not even a word for all these years and then this?

"Maybe," Lucy interjected gently, "we should leave it at that for now and give her time to process."

"I guess."

The sudden shift caught Yukino by surprise; she did not want them to leave, she realised. It felt as if Solano would vanish again if she let her walk out that door. "W-Wait," she half-pleaded, half-demanded, "can you, I mean, can we, maybe, talk some more?" She quietly berated herself for being so skittish, but the words were already out.

Thankfully, Solano was too busy brightening up to notice her state. She agreed readily and so did Lucy. The blonde joined them at the table again while both Agria women relaxed somewhat. With the prospect of immediate decisions off the table, Solano even managed a smile.

"So, you know that I was busy doing crime the last years." Her gaze ran down Yukino's rough attire, well-worn and comfortable. She suddenly felt underdressed when compared to the elegant, white dress on her sister. Whatever Solano thought though, she did not say it. "How was it for you?"

"Eh." At least this was familiar ground. Yukino offered a shrug. "Nothing special. Doing some chores every day to help out, school, the works." Her own small list of petty crimes went unmentioned, but only barely.

Solano nodded slowly. "I see," she murmured. Then her gaze became more analytical. "I heard you're learning magic?"

"I am, so what?"

Her confrontational tone made Solano backpedal. "Nothing, just curious." She was almost frantic in her denial. Yukino kept frowning, only to remember that her sister, and that was still weird to think, was also a wizard. The expected skepticism was only in her head. Maybe she should apologise?

Instead of dwelling on that question, Yukino reluctantly turned to Lucy. "Actually, can I ask you something?" The blonde nodded readily. Yukino felt hopeful for once: "I was thinking I'd like to study Take Over magic, do you know how I'd go about that?" It was a bit of a long shot, but the Mirajane was one of Lucy's guildmates.

"You shouldn't," was Solano's immediate response. When Yukino's gaze snapped back to her, she completely ignored the forming scowl. "Take Over isn't for beginners. One mistake in its use and you're dead. Stop looking like that, the answer is no."

Yukino turned away. She was decidedly not pouting, but her sister clearly deserved the cold shoulder for this one. "Mirajane did it as a child," she muttered.

"Mirajane is an aberration," Solano countered. "She obviously inherited Take Over from one of her parents and even then it absolutely should have killed her."

Yukino bristled at the insult to her main role model, but limited her response to another scowl. Solano was unimpressed and met her gaze head-on. When it became clear she would not budge on this, Yukino huffed. "What do you do, then?"

She was studied with suspicion for a moment, but Solano let her change the subject. "My mainstays are Aera, Celestial Spirit magic, and Heavenly Body magic. They synergise well with each other, but each one was hard to learn," she immediately cut off.

"Then what should I learn?" Yukino countered in annoyance. "If everything is so hard, where do I start?"

"Well," Lucy interjected kindly, "disciplines like Diver and Solid Script are nice for beginners-" "Nah."

The blonde fell silent again while Yukino shook her head. "I want to learn real magic, not nerd stuff" she told her. This time she earned herself not one but two unimpressed looks.

"You know," Lucy mused idly, "Levy would probably punch you for what you just said. I mean, she is a nerd, but she has a mean right hook."

Both sisters now stared at her. Hearing the name did remind Yukino of the coverage on Fairy Tail's Levy, whose favoured magic was indeed Solid Script. But Lucy was not done; ignoring their looks, she kept going: "And Master Priscilla started with Diver, at that. She gets an incredible mileage out of it."

"But if you want to follow in my footsteps and make your life harder," Solano quipped, "how about summoning spirits? I can help you with that... if you want," she quickly added. A notable pause followed, but Yukino waited for the sentence to finish. "It's not easy, but not backbreaking like Heavenly Body magic, either. That's what I started with."

"I do not follow," Lucy interjected again, except this time honestly confused. "Celestial Spirit magic is easy to pick up."

Solano stared at her for a while, making the blonde fidget awkwardly. When she turned back to Yukino, her expression was resolute. "Do not believe anything she says about Celestial Spirit magic," she declared. "Girl has no idea how hard it is for anyone whose last name isn't Heartfilia."

"Come now, that is uncalled for."

Yukino had no idea what this exchange was about, but she did recall reading that Lucy's family had a lot of wizards. Solano was undeterred; once she saw her little sister did not reject the idea, she elaborated: "The basics are simple enough. Opening gates on your own is what takes years, but if you have a key, you can bond your first spirit in two to six months. That's without any previous training. You already know the basic stuff about magic, so it's more like two weeks to two months."

That did sound tempting. Summoning spirits, fighting together... Yukino liked the idea. There was only one problem. "Except I don't have a key."

Somehow, this did not affect either woman much. Lucy became thoughtful, but Solano just inclined her head. "True. Even silver keys are expensive and not all that common. But what if, say," she said slowly, producing a ring with seven keys, "I did some creative redistribution of assets?"

"You shouldn't," Lucy immediately stopped her, before Yukino even knew how to address this. In fact, the blonde seemed positively aggravated. "And you should know that."

"I do," Solano agreed easily. Nonetheless, she detached two of the golden keys. "Except I asked them before we met up." First she offered one of them to Lucy. "Scorpio rather be with you. We do not get along all that well in the first place."

"Oh... thank you." The offering was accepted meekly. Lucy stared down at her new key, then back up at Solano. Yukino watched her slowly produce a keyring of her own; it now held eight golden keys and a few silvers. After some musing, the Fairy Tail wizard glanced back at the key Solano still held. "But I have a hard time believing Aries would want to leave anyone."

"She did not," Solano agreed again, this time with a gentle smile the likes of which Yukino had not seen before. Her traitorous heart immediately wanted to be the recipient. "She said she is happy going with whatever I decide. I was planning to keep her key, but I guess." Solano paused, took a deep breath, and offered it to Yukino. "Regardless of if you want to stay with me, I want you to have this. If Aries is with you, I don't need to worry that you're safe."

Yukino had half a mind to slap her hand away. Ingratiating oneself to her with presents like this annoyed her to no end. She could go it alone just fine. The words almost slipped out before she realised; this was an olive branch. Then, just as she began to consider it in earnest, Lucy disrupted the moment.

"I call upon you who rests within the Celestial Spirit world! Heed my call! Pass through the gate! Come forth, Scorpio!"

A blinding light announced the arrival of a man. And what a man he was; Yukino could not help but stare. Tall, tanned, and with a vicious, metal scorpion's tail. He wore a jovial smile and easily accepted a big hug from Lucy. "Good to be back, little lady," he greeted. Then, one arm around the blonde, he threw the Agrias a wink. "Hey, Sol. That your sis?"

"Yes, hello Scorpio. Meet Yukino." Said girl waved shily.

"Nice to meetcha. Now for you, little lady." He put Lucy down to look her over. "Gotta say, it feels good to be back. Quari was nagging me 'bout it for years, y'know?" He left a short pause, then leaned forward with a mischievous grin. "But you didn't hear that from me, got it?"

"Of course." Lucy retorted with a huff, cocking her hips. "As long as you actually want to be back? Not that I expect you to be a doormat, what with how Cancer and Taurus talk about you."

"Righto. But I'm wounded, no endorsement from Quari?"

"None, just endless bullying that she has a boyfriend and I don't."

"'cept that's no longer true," Scorpio laughed with a nod to Lucy. "Anyway, let's get to business, right?"

Yukino was transfixed; she could only stare in dumbfounded awe as those two developed a quick back-and-forth. Acceptable days in the week to summon, preferred timeslots, they even covered special circumstances such as permission to summon whenever when in danger. They were done in less than five minutes, perfectly happy.

"Alright then," Scorpio finished as they shook hands. "I better get my ass back home before Quari gets grumbly. You know how she is." Just as the gate flashed open behind him, he snapped his fingers with a sly grin. "Oh, and Virgo will probably be out for a day or two. Just figured you'd want to know. Bye!"

He left laughing for some unfathomable reason. Yukino's gaze alternated between the spot he just stood and the flustered Lucy. "What was he talking about?"

"Nothing," the blonde denied immediately, then sighed under the weight of both sisters' stares. "Let us just say Virgo has weird ideas about what constitutes a reward. And that someone I know has too much fun acting the bad guy."

She left it at that. Yukino was about to pry when a glint of gold flickered in the corner of her eye; Solano still held the other golden key. It taunted her, almost, with the promise of a companion like Scorpio. Freely offered. Yukino had no idea who Aries was or what they were like, but she was still enticed by the prospect.

After considering a moment longer, she tentatively reached out and touched her sister's hand. Solano twitched, gaze flicking back to Yukino. Their gazes met, neither being able to read the other. But for now, Yukino accepted the olive branch Solano offered. Her fingers closed around the key, running over warm and calloused skin. Then Solano's hand closed around hers for a moment; whatever words she wanted to speak though, they did not come out. The older sister let go and the younger one studied the key up close. Her key.

Into the contemplative silence, Solano's voice sounded loud: "Are you sure this is fine with you?"

"I am," Lucy said immediately. "Maybe I would have minded before I joined Fairy Tail, but by now recollecting these keys is no longer my dream. All of them are with me either way. I just need to get my act together and practice with their gates. Which, come to think of it, might mean you will have to host me for tea every once in a while. We could study together, if you want?"

"I'll think about it," Solano deflected, though she appeared quite pleased nonetheless.

"That is all I can ask." So saying, Lucy carefully pushed the chair she sat in back under the table. "And on that note, I believe we should get going." A cold pit opened in Yukino's stomach, unaffected even by that reassuring smile sent her way. "We will be back soon to see if you came to a decision."

She wanted to say something. Anything, really. But her voice failed her. Tears brimmed in the corners of her eyes. She did not want them to leave. Only when her gaze fell on Solano did she manage to speak: "Will you, I mean, will you really come back?" Her voice nearly broke. Fear coursed through Yukino's entire being, to have this opportunity slip away again. Have it all be for nothing.

Then she was held. Lithe but firm arms closed around her in a tight embrace. She immediately melted into the touch, so starved for it she was. Face hidden behind Solano's shoulder, the older Agria gently petted her head. "I will be back," she declared quietly. "Promise."

These five words opened in tiny door in Yukino's heart. One that she nailed shut many years ago. She already knew her answer then, but could not bring herself to speak. She wanted to enjoy this for as long as possible. And if it meant letting them leave, to wait a few more days? She already waited a decade. What was a little more? Yukino dared to believe. She believed she could have a family again.
 
5.7 Metamorphosis
"I sometimes wonder about divinity. The legends of Godslayer magic imply their existence, as does Ankhseram's curse. Yet what truly makes a god? My personal opinion is that any being of phenomenal powers would be as a god, regardless of whether they actually are. Perception plays into it as well; if we counted the number of cults and other pseudo-religious groups venerating me, one could believe I were a god. I never saw myself in such a manner, but unfortunately I can not stop others from disagreeing. If you do believe me a god, please always remember that my core tenet is to love life, to love magic, to love people, and to love yourself as best as you are able."

-excerpt from "The Love of Magic"

Wendy's journey home was uneventful. A train ride to Onibas brought her back into familiar territory; from there she could simply wander east. The breeze soon carried Quelaan's scent, but also a faintly human note. Wendy's brow creased, but her step did not falter; she followed the main road until a dirt path of her own making branched off. It led to a set of hills shadowed by several trees. Golden leaves began to cover the ground, but ever more were caught up in mid-air.

"Did she expand our demesne once again?" Carla mused idly before landing on Wendy's shoulder. "Such annoyance."

She may have bantered back at another time. As it were, Wendy was too focussed on passing the nearly invisible traps. Not to mention she had to breathe deeply, almost panting to get enough air. Just as she ducked again, she spotted a silver thread glistening in the afternoon sun.

Their ordeal did not last long, at least; within a few minutes the threads became more common than uncovered ground. They buffered Wendy's feet as she went, every strand in the air now so thick she could easily see and evade them. She deftly avoided a faintly wiggling cocoon, taking note of the head-sized paw poking out its lower end. Several other cocoons followed, but none were as big as the bear. None smelled like human either, so no harassment from wannabe-adventurers for once. Probably just a lost wanderer, then.

At the mouth of the cave they dug together, Wendy paused for breath. Then she announced herself with a loud "Quelaan!" Her scent was strongest here, so Wendy knew her caretaker dwelled inside. "We returneth!"

"So I see," a soft voice answered. "Come hither, my sweet. Rest thine aching feet, tell me of thy journey."

Carla took wing immediately. Wendy followed her catty friend inside, where Quelaan awaited them; the Exceed produced glowing orbs of light, illuminating a heaven of silk and packed earth. Their caretaker rested against a wall, facing their way with unseeing eyes. Tiny waves of Ethernano raced across the room. Wendy felt them ping off her, the echo giving Quelaan a perfect idea of her surroundings. Arms were spread wide in silent offer and she threw herself the last metres into her embrace. Carla huffed, but joined them a moment later.

"Welcome home, Wendy. Carla."

Cuddling like this was so much easier on Wendy. Quelaan eschewed clothing, but somehow she never managed to evoke anything but content when they were close. Ivory skin marked her entire body, white just like her hair. Wendy compared her to Master Priscilla once in her mind, only to realise even the half-dragon was not this pale.

Once released from Quelaan's embrace, she still settled next to her. One hand absently patted her caretaker's lower half, the chitin cold under her hands. It was such an odd transition from the warmth pulsing through Quelaan's flesh. She never asked if it could even be felt, whether the spider was its own being or part of the woman protruding from its back. Its many eyes fluttered, one thick leg swishing against the bed of silk. Quelaan gave no indication either way, she merely petted Wendy's head in a similar manner. Carla wordlessly pressed against their free hands for pets.

After recharging for a while, Wendy began to speak of her week. She slowed down once it came to the battles with Oracion Seis, still uncertain of the way she felt. Carla's abduction had since been forgiven, though the girl herself was still a little upset. She returned completely unharmed, after all; and after what happened to Angel otherwise, Wendy simply could not stay mad. Curiously though, the deaths of four people did not bother her much. Lucy overreacted, or so she felt. She did not really know any of them.

At the same time, Wendy fully realised how close to death she came that night. That was what bothered her the most. Quelaan offered neither judgement nor distaste over the conundrum. She simply praised her tenacity, but also criticised her overuse of the arcane. "This is why moderating one's might is imperative," was her final wisdom.

Wendy nodded, chest heaving with every breath she took. It evened out from time to time, but ever became laboured again. Soon enough, it happened not just while at rest. No, after a simple meal and some time spent doing chores, Wendy returned to her practice. She was still just mediocre in her dance. Only a year passed since Quelaan deemed her acceptable and she had only been found adequate once. Despite her gentleness, in this one subject she was a harsh taskmistress.

They both noticed that something was wrong. Halfway through her dance, Wendy's chest constricted for lack of air. She tripped, propelling herself into the reinforced wall.

Rubbing her stinging forehead, Wendy waited for the rebuke. Quelaan delivered it as softly as ever, but it still stung her pride: "It seems thy mission was more taxing than I assumed. Enough."

So Wendy crawled back to Quelaan's side; she knew she disappointed her, but her word was law where the art was concerned. Trying again after the teacher ended their session would only disappoint her more.

Deft fingers soon braided her long hair while she cuddled Carla to her chest. The Exceed was already dozing. Wendy joined her within minutes.

Then however, she dreamt vividly. Wendy hovered in an endless void. She turned this way and that, finding nothing. She could see even without a single spark of light, could walk the endless plain in any direction. Even up and down. She realised she was dreaming a moment later, but even that did not wake her.

She blinked at eternity, uncertain what to do now.

A second may have passed, or a hundred thousand years. She could not tell, for nothing changed. There was not even air, she realised after an indeterminate amount of time. Her chest began to sting as if on cue, the only change in all this static.

And Wendy jerked awake, panting. Her chest burned as she gasped for air, frantically trying to get anything at all into her lungs. She wheezed, clawed at her numbing chest, tried to call for help, all to no avail. Her struggles woke Quelaan and Carla; she felt hands and paws steadying her, but neither could do anything. Tears ran down Wendy's cheeks as she hyperventilated

Then it was gone, as sudden as it came. Taking deep gulps of air, Wendy collapsed against Quelaan and cried into her chest. She was soaked in sweat, aching, feeling almost boneless. She truly thought she would suffocate; fear of such an awful death and joy of being still alive kept her wailing for long minutes. Her family comforted her, held her tight until she calmed down. Wendy even managed to fall asleep again.

The phenomenon did not repeat that night, but she felt groggy and weird in the morning. Wendy began her day with a simple dance, only to trip up in the middle. The moment she recovered and soothed the twang of her soul as it was slung out of rhythm, she made sure nobody saw that. Shaking her head, Wendy tried again. Only to trip up again. And again. And again.

By the fourth time, she no longer cared for having caught Quelaan's attention. She was growing increasingly agitated about failing a basic dance motion, not to mention annoyed. Wendy knew without a shadow of doubt she could do this. She had done it a thousand times!

After her tenth failure, she had to take a break; her entire body ached from the strain. The arachnoid woman looming over her never felt so imposing than in these moments. Quelaan must be ashamed of her failure to perform even simple practice.

Contrary to Wendy's expectations, slender hands gently cradled her tearstained cheeks. "Tis alright, my sweet," Quelaan cooed, shushing all attempts to explain herself. "Thou went through ordeals most curious, tis only natural not to be in tune with thyself."

Despite her own misgivings, Wendy let herself be comforted. After a few minutes, Quelaan smiled at her. "Present thy soul. If even the basics are to fail, often the mistake is not on the dancer."

She did as told without hesitation; though Priscilla's rebuke never quite left her, she trusted both Carla and Quelaan with her life. A gentle tug dislodged her essence, long since eased into compact form. From her bosom she drew a constantly shifting, aquamarine matrix. It floated atop her palm, hundreds of tiny blocks that made up herself. Now that she saw it directly, something about it felt off indeed. Wendy squinted.

Her family examined the familiar sight as well. Quelaan leaned close, blind yet feeling for something only she could perceive. "It feels similar, but ever so slightly different," she judged in the end. "Meaning, Wendy?"

"That I am not in harmony with mine soul," she answered dutifully. "And so weaving its power into mine motions will always fail." She slumped in relief despite the news; it was not her fault. "But what could have caused such a shift in a scant ten days? Can a single brush with death truly be so, so... so changing?"

"I find that hard to believe," Carla mused. She slid off of Quelaan's carapace and took some distance. "Behold."

The Exceed then danced the same basic steps Wendy had failed in; her rhythmic motions soon trailed ivory flame, its conclusion a clean ring of fire scything outward over several metres. Carla bowed as was customary, but her expression was grave. "Mine ordeal was no less than Wendy's, yet I am still in tune."

"It may still be," Quelaan reasoned thoughtfully, "as thou art an Exceed and not, like Wendy, human."

"A fair point."

Even though the two agreed, Wendy could not help but wonder. She did not feel much different after that mission.

In the end, all she could do was attempt to attune with her soul once more. Alas, it was for naught. Harmony eluded her.

To make matters worse, every night since that day, she woke at least once from breathing troubles.

On the seventh day, they came to her during morning chores. Just when Wendy was clearing away dust and dirt from the silken ground, her chest contracted as if empty. She grabbed her throat in fear, felt the flesh expand as she forced heaving gasps. But nothing came in. A strangled wheeze was all the noise she could produce. It alerted Carla in an instant, but the Exceed could do nothing. Panicked shouts for Quelaan barely reached Wendy's ears.

She marshalled her will and focussed Ethernano. A spell circle she always knew flashed into existence in front of her face; it sent gentle pings of magic through her mouth and throat, searching for the issue. Moments later, Wendy's world broke as the magic told her she was perfectly fine. Her lungs burned, everything became darker as conciousness began to fade.

By the time it ended, Wendy lay on the ground soaked in sweat, crying helplessly. "W-What is wrong with me?" she sobbed, but neither Carla nor Quelaan had any answers.

It felt as if there was too little air, as if the air itself was too little, and it kept happening. The time between episodes grew continuously shorter until there was not a moment Wendy could breathe easily. Something was missing, something she needed.

Realisation came to her a few nights later, just after another attack. Her hand clamped around Quelaan's arm with enough force to bruise. "N-Nirvana," she wheezed at the befuddled woman. "I need Nirvana. The air, tis ambrosia." She remembered vividly now, such unrivalled, clean and magical air. She never once breathed anything so rich. She did not know why she needed it, but it was just not enough here.

From there on, she turned delirious. Her body began to heat up, then burn; she was constantly flushed and soaked in sweat. What few glimpses of waking she got, food and drink were foisted on her. They moved at some point, into a city despite the general wariness around Quelaan. Carla once reasoned with her that the wood place was weeks away, that they did not have the time. She saw clean ceilings and felt a hard mattress. She saw people in white robes talk to Carla.

Once, Wendy woke to lips pressing against her own. Quelaan was closer than ever before, holding Wendy tight. Her soul sung as she drew on Wendy's, coaxing hers in a way she did not understand. Her inside exploded in violence, a wrath not her own screeching at the intrusion; primal winds formed in her lungs and struck outward. Quelaan broke contact with a pained scream. Cracks formed over her entire body, the spider lady shuddering on all eight legs. Her lower half screeched in pain while the upper one frantically weaved unknown spells.

Aghast, Wendy looked around. She was concious at least. The bedroom she found herself in held dark colours and the light blue emblem of Blue Pegasus, a stylised horse head flanked by wings. She recognised it, just like she recognised some of the well-dressed people rushing inside. Frantic questions were asked, but she already heard none of them. Quelaan's attempt to draw out her ailment only delayed it.

The next time Wendy woke, she could see outside of an airship's window. She saw her reflection, gaunt and dishevelled. Tired as she was however, she could not even feel afraid of what it meant. Was she going to die?

"Wendy!" A ballistic feline threw her back into the covers. Carla immediately fussed, teary eyed. "You woke!" she exclaimed with such joy that it made Wendy's heart throb. Others quickly followed the call, but the Exceed hissed at them.

From what Wendy learned, they were on-board of the Christina's sister ship, Lilia. Quelaan and Carla were with her, as were the three nice people from Blue Pegasus she met before. It was an unarmed transport ship, but much faster than her sister. At that point of the conversation, Wendy fell into restless slumber again. She barely managed to breathe enough, weaving the sky's essence into fresher air as long as she could. It helped stave off the worst, but something was still missing.

For Quelaan of Izalith, it felt like the world ended once again. She felt such anguish only twice before; the first time when her mother was consumed by her own flames and birthed Chaos, the second when Quelaag ceased to come home. Mother and sister lost, she fostered a child regardless and now had to watch her wither away. Her very soul still ached from the attempt to draw out the child's mysterious illness.

Once Wendy fell asleep again, Quelaan reluctantly left her in peace. The past week clearly demonstrated that remaining at her bedside was futile.

"My heartfelt thanks, once again," she murmured toward the closest person. Her echolocation identified him as Ren; he was the only one not even subconciously revulsed by her nature. No shivers at all.

"It's the least we can do," he deflected modestly. "Wendy was a great help on our mission. If something happened to her there, we won't just let her down." He effectively echoed his guild master, Bob, which calmed Quelaan as well. She quickly took a liking to the kindly, stout man over the days they stayed with Blue Pegasus. Ren sighed. "I just hope this works."

"I concur."

She paused then, bereft of a subject to follow or any activities to distract herself with. "May I make a request?" Ren nodded, after which Quelaan motioned in the direction they were moving. "Wouldst thou describe our destination? I am quite curious."

"Huh? Oh, right." He winced, likely because he forgot her blindness for the moment. "Sure."

The erstwhile Chaos Witch had to admit that his attempts to accomodate her were adorable. He went into great detail about Worth Woodsea, the verdant sea of green that only displayed first signs of gold. Her indulgent smile waned once Ren moved onto the mountainous tree that housed Nirvana, however. Reaching straight toward the heavens, without any outside branches, bark akin to solid stone. Each quality he named made the sudden dread expand further through her body. Every hair on her arachnoid half stood on end, the demon's maw hissing despite her effort to quiet it.

"Is something wrong?" One of Ren's guildmates inquired, cutting him off at the same time. Hibiki, she thought his name was. "You seem pretty tense, miss."

Quelaan wordlessly prowled forward. Her magic could not reach their destination; even if she were more than just competent with Earthland's style, it would not. Like so often she willed her eyes to work, to give her just a single glimpse. Alas, it was for naught, but she made the attempt regardless.

"How tall is yonder tree?"

They told her about two hundred metres. Tiny in comparison to what she remembered, but gargantuan in comparison to any common tree. Quelaan did not want to believe it, but all of this fit too well to be a coincidence. The air heated up as flame reacted to her fear. "Could it? Would it? But how is it?" she muttered for a little while, only to realise everyone except the comatose Wendy were surrounding her in worry. For their sake at least, she admitted the truth to herself: "Tis an archtree. A juvenile one, but an archtree nonetheless."

She immediately confused the three men. Carla climbed onto her shoulder to peer at the screen she approached earlier. Her brow was scrunched, posture tense. "Thou mentioned archtrees before," she pried cautiously. "They were once a staple of thy home."

"A staple indeed, yet oh so much more."

She did not want to say it. Instinct told Quelaan to turn around now. Vacate Worth Woodsea and never return. But Nirvana was here, in this very archtree; she had to choose between confronting the one who grew the tree and forfeiting Wendy's life. Once put in these terms, the decision was easily made. Quelaan had little else of any worth, so she may as well take the risk.

"Please set us down near the tree and leave at once. Tis not safe."

"Hold on," Hibiki interjected, "We can't just leave you here. And what's so dangerous about that tree?"

"Please trust me."

She pleaded with her head turned his way. Hibiki squirmed for a while before relenting. He did insist on taking them all the way to Nirvana, though; miraculously, no fury made manifest welcomed them on wings of stone. Lilia rose atop the tree and entered its hollow inside, allowing their little family to disembark onto a thick glade.

Wendy immediately grew animated in her arms. She woke up while Quelaan still thanked the three men who ferried them. The witch held her charge tight, once again insisting they leave now. "It is not certain whether Wendy will recover," she urged while holding onto the squirming child, "or how long her recovery will take. Prithee, if need be, we shall find our way back. Thou already did more than I could ever have demanded."

"W-Well," Hibiki muttered. "I guess? Alright," he relented at last. "Stay safe then."

Carla waved until the Lilia rose out of sight. Only then did Quelaan let go of her charge, who immediately began to roll around in the tall grass. The witch herself cast streamers of Ethernano across the entire glade, flinching when the impression at its center became clear. Neither Wendy nor Carla realised it was not a statue; they did not know them like Quelaan did.

Once the children were done celebrating Wendy's waking, they wandered toward the dragon. Quelaan skittered after them, but Wendy already slumped down against its flank by the time she reached. This gave her pause, for it had still not moved.

"I do not understand," Carla admitted. "Even should this be an archtree, how is it relevant?"

"Archtrees art not native to Earthland," Quelaan lectured quietly. "This tree doth not belong. And neither dost thou, dragon."

She had addressed the statue, which remained firmly in place. For a moment Quelaan thought she may be mistaken. She dearly hoped she was.

But no.

Dust began to rain down its flanks, pieces of soil and plant matter dislodged from their homes. The dragon's cyclopean eye was pointed straight at her; his head rose from strong frontlegs as the behemoth stood, almost crushing Wendy underfoot. She squeaked in surprise and rolled aside, but most of her hair was caught under the massive paw and pinned down.

"Neither doth thou, wretched witch," it hissed back in a growl that ran through the entire glade. Various animals woke and fled the presence of an apex predator to end all apex predators. Only Quelaan stood her ground. She absolutely wanted to join them, but refrained. The dragon growled. "Even in realms betwixt, I can not be free of thy machinations."

The lack of immediate violence stumped Quelaan. She considered the dragon before her again, easily twice as big and three times as long as her own oversized body. Was he being defensive?

Giving quiet thanks that Wendy and Carla were too awestruck or terrified to interrupt, she decided to attempt diplomacy: "We seek neither altercation nor affront, dragon. I am Quelaan of Izalith."

"And I am Kalameet, the Everlasting. Naturally, thou seek not death. Yet, perchance mine slumber was meant to end with the blood of enemy ours spilled?" He shifted in place and Quelaan called upon her soul's flame. Eight sinewy legs evened out her balance.

"Only if thou will risk the wrath of a witch," she answered. She would protect Wendy and Carla, no matter what.

To her astonishment, Kalameet actually relented. The dragon huffed out a puff of hot air and made to speak. He then noticed the human girl desperately trying to pull her hair out from under his paw; an absent flick swiped Wendy away. "Curious indeed, that thou hast not already set ablaze mine roost, as witches are wont to do."

"No less than an Everlasting dragon seeking parlay," she countered. His comments gave her an idea why they were in this unsteady stalemate, but she remained on her guard. "May we agree to cease hostilities, perchance? We arrived for unrelated reasons."

Another huff followed, but Kalameet remained almost docile. His wings ground against his scales, but did not spread. "Speak, then," he decided. "So that I will be rid of thy presence."

"Without descending on us after we left thy tree?"

"I may yet reconsider if thou continue to waste mine time."

The sentiment was clear enough; Quelaan relented. She already dared far more than she should have and got away with it. A part of her implored not to reveal her relation to Wendy; the dragons were her family's archenemies, they would stop at nothing to inflict suffering. Yet what choice did she have?

"How can we trust this... this..." Carla kept failing her attempt to find a proper term for the dragon confronting them. Kalameet's head shifted minutely, studying the feline fly buzzing around Quelaan.

"Shush," she murmured, deftly catching Carla and holding her tight. "Speak not a word more." Wendy pulled herself up at one of Quelaan's hindlegs at this point; the witch nudged her forward from the hiding spot, presenting her to Kalameet. "This child is sick. Her body remains without blemish, yet she can no longer breathe freely. The nature of her ailment eludes us, though it seems to be cured by the superior air in thy demesne." Now that everything was lined up in a short explanation, Quelaan began to wonder: "That which mortals dubbed Nirvana, is it thy doing?"

Kalameet remained quiet for long seconds. He sized up Wendy; she offered a trembling bow in greeting, to no reaction. His voice lost the growling edge, but continued to rumble darkly: "Tis I who created Nirvana, indeed. Mine experiments with this realm's composition vastly improved its quality. Lesser beings revere the site itself, yet none ever realised my nature." He peered closer at Wendy. "This one, I remember. It walked my domain not long ago."

"Pardon," Wendy murmured, "but was it thou who took the lives of the two who perished here?"

Quelaan bristled in worry, but the dragon thankfully did not take offense. His head tilted so he could study Wendy better. The child stepped forward, encouraged by a lack of hostility. Kalameet himself growled.

"Fools who dared discuss before mine eyes how to exploit mine creation for their worthless ends, who dreamt of claiming mine roost as theirs. Yes, I exterminated these pests. Now step forward and remain still."

Wendy stopped, fidgeting as she tried to verbalise a complaint. Quelaan, too, wished to know more about what he meant to do. But a single, low growl told her his patience ran thin. She carefully nudged Wendy with her foremost legs; the child took several more steps until she stood right in front of the black-scaled behemoth.

Kalameet rose on his hindlegs, a glow of dark orange filling his centermost eye. Quelaan's eyes grew wide when she realised she could see it. Through blindness and alien magic, she could see the light. The shock stopped her from doing anything at all when he leaned forward and bent down his neck, aligning his gaze with Wendy. Its glow spread outward, completely covering her like viscous fluid. The child's breath hitched, but she remained perfectly still even as primal power raised her up. A faint humming could be heard, the only sign of otherworldly might at work.

Seconds turned to minutes as Kalameet did whatever this was. The dragon did not move and Quelaan kept staring at the only colour she saw in centuries. As off and wrong as it may feel, she was mesmerised nonetheless. Even without that, she would not have dared break the silence until the glow faded and her charge dropped back down. Wendy scurried back to hide underneath her massive body, shivering. Quelaan hugged Carla tighter to her chest, trying not to feel upset at the colour's fading.

"Thy verdict?"

"...curious."

Kalameet's gaze never left Wendy, who hugged Quelaan's leg for comfort. "I shall forgive thine attempt to push close one bred to battle dragons." Her brows flew up, she completely forgot. "For Wendy was not meant to ever face an Everlasting dragon. This realm's lesser dragons may be passable, but they are not kin and thus not mine concern."

"What piqued thy curiousity?" she pried carefully, but also a bit suspicious. "In addition, how didst thou learn her name?"

The dragon hesitated, sized her up momentarily, and returned to studying Wendy. "All becomes evident before mine gaze. I dissect the very building blocks of existence itself and may rearrange them at will. Within limits, that is. The stronger a being I wish to affect, the more resistance they can offer. The larger the imposed change, the more reality pushes back. But it can never stop me from perceiving and I saw Wendy Marvel in all her aspects. Dragonslayer, healer, human, and not."

"Pardon?"

Three voices had spoken as one; the explanation aside, his final words gave them all pause. Kalameet chuckled before addressing Wendy directly: "Thy Dragonslayer magic, it changes thee. Such focus on air and the skies, it allowed thee to imbibe more than just the Ethernano I built here. No, surrounding us is an expression of mine nature, of eternity. Thou breathed eternity, thus thy body and soul began to adapt. Futilely, they struggle to evolve in response to power they can not match in thy current form."

"Hold," Quelaan interrupted. She felt faint, especially because she understood. "Dost thou mean to imply that Wendy's body... turneth her into a dragon?"

"Indeed. An Everlasting dragon, at that. Yonder rashes," he addressed Wendy once again, "art not. They art a first attempt to grow scales of stone."

The girl herself stood thunderstruck, not dissimilar to Quelaan herself. Carla hung in the air as if paralyzed.

"I?" Wendy ultimately spoke. "A dragon? A true dragon? No, not true. Not like Grandine." She spoke more to herself, musing quietly. Quelaan wanted to embrace her, but did not dare agitate her fragile truce with Kalameet. The black dragon released a weak growl and a puff of hot air.

"I know not one called Grandine. Tis not an Everlasting name. Dost thou speak of this realm's lesser dragons?"

"Prithee refrain from insulting my first foster mother. It is of her kindness that I became a Dragonslayer at all."

Another puff of air blew Quelaan's hair away. Wendy was almost blown over. Kalameet evenly met the human child's glare. "And now thou shalt become more than thy... mother ever imagined. I beheld her design, meant to retain thy mortal self. She left thou before metamorphosis could begin." He settled down again, head resting on his frontlegs.

Meanwhile, Wendy hung on his lips, or what may count as such. Quelaan suddenly wondered how a dragon could speak human tongues perfectly without them. Kalameet, unaware of and indifferent to reality's opinions, kept speaking: "Tis not the actions of a mere wyvern or drake, indeed. Worthy of appreciation, indeed. Yet not kin and thus lesser. Thou will understand soon."

She did not like the implication. Before Wendy could try prying further into what Kalameet learned of Grandine, Quelaan dared to step forward. She placed a hand on her charge's head and forced the conversation back on track: "Thou can not undo the process?"

"Perhaps," was the response. "Tis a conundrum. Can a lesser being ascend to become kin? Should it be allowed to? Can the process be reverted and should it? Doth I seek to elevate new kin, now that I know it possible? Is mere chance worth expending time on reverting? Moreover, can that which tasted eternity remain itself when separated? Thy body seeks to grow beyond its means, which it alone can not achieve. Thou requireth mine creation for sustenance, now and until the day thy metamorphosis finds its end. Thou requireth myself."

The head rose, gaze now clearly aimed at Quelaan. "And until such a day, the witch can not hunt me for fear of thy life."

Had he been capable of it, she knew Kalameet would smirk in this moment. Quelaan's brows furrowed in annoyance more than actual anger.

"But moreover," he ended, "beyond idle curiousity, no reason exists for me to undo what thy own nature wrought. Thou have but two choices, Wendy Marvel: to ascend, or to face oblivion."

Wendy stood still, shaking. At first Quelaan thought her close to tears, but another echo of Ethernano told of the snarl etched onto her face. "Thou wouldst withhold cure for thy own benefit?" she growled back. Quelaan quickly tried to shush her, but she tore away from her hands. "Play with mine life for curiousity and selfishness?"

Kalameet's growl shook the entire tree. Quelaan shied away and Carla fell on her butt in fright. But Wendy stood her ground, staring down the dragon. After several tense seconds, Kalameet huffed.

"Thou ought to listen when a greater being speaks. Tasting eternity leaves a mark upon thyself. The process began, thy soul hath imbibed it freely. Were I to excise it, whatever there was before wouldst not return. Whether thou desire lobotomy or ascension, change is inevitable."

That was it then. Quelaan slumped, sinking onto her arachnoid bottom. She could not help but cover her eyes, hoping it would all turn out to be a dream; alas, the scenery remained.

"Can we trust his word?" Carla inquired weakly.

"Yes," Wendy answered. She still stood in front of them, but the fight left her as well. "Dragons doth not speak lies."

"Indeed," Quelaan added. "Pride demands they step above the subterfuge of lesser beings. Or so I heard," she ended. "My sister once asked Duke Seath-"

The sentence was cut off by another thundering growl. Kalameet lunged forward, his snout appearing in her face within a heartbeat. The noise reverberated through Quelaan's body and made her lock up in instinctual fear. "Never. Speak. That. Name." Kalameet growled.

"V-V-Very well, my a-apologies," she stuttered in response, hoping he would not bite off her head.

After glaring at her a little longer, Kalameet withdrew and settled once more. "And indeed," he changed the subject, "paltry nuisance such as falsehood lies beneath the Everlasting. Now, thy choice?"

Wendy fidgeted, now sat on the ground after leaping aside to dodge the dragon's earlier charge. She did not look at any of them, but Quelaan understood without words; she did not want to die. Not when there was still a long life ahead of her. But at the same time, the prospect was suffocating.

In the end, she firmed up and stood once more. A small surge of air blasted the dirt off her clothes. "There is no choice to be made," she answered tiredly. "The only path I can walk is forward."

"Then so it shall be."

Kalameet appeared far too pleased for anyone's liking, but Quelaan did not feel well calling him out on it. Moreover, his head turned back her way. "We shall arrange ourselves, in one way or another. I hate thee, but meditation and experimentation quenched mine wrath."

Quelaan inclined her head. "I never hated thee, but it matters not. If mine child is to remain here, then so will I."

"And I as well," Carla added with a huff. She pushed both paws into her hips. "Thou would be ever lost without mine counsel."

And so it was decided. Quelaan immediately knew this would be a troublesome time, but she was willing to trust a truce. Kalameet spent most of his time still as a statue, sometimes accepting conversation; it took a while for him to acknowledge Carla, but curiousity did what no amount of arguing could.

From later examinations, they learned that the motion of Wendy's soul gradually slowed down. The assumption was that her ascension would be complete once it gained perfect stillness.

Moreover, Quelaan managed to exchange the story of her arrival on Earthland against his; as it turned out, they both were torn away into a sudden void. Only that while the witch arrived about eight years prior and met Wendy a few hours later, Kalameet lived here for centuries. His arrival preceded the fall of dragon rule, but he did not care to measure how far. He planted his archtree and kept to himself.

Ultimately, Quelaan began to relax around him. It was ironic that when her sisters yet lived, they would have shared a merry laugh about the idea of allying with an Everlasting dragon. Yet here she was. And her odd little family apparently grew to four members.
 
5.8 A Dark Soul
"I played god, tore the natural order asunder, and violated even the laws of magic in my pursuit of a futile goal. In the end, even after all these sins, I remain as I were, having failed and knowing oh so little. But what little I know, I wish to pass on to others so that they may one day succeed where I have failed. Certainly the path to a kinder world is paved by progress and understanding."

-excerpt from "The Heart of Magic", foreword

Time passed, but nothing changed. Kyoka's life was an endless repetition of meaningless days. Her worldview remained shattered as she stumbled through life like a dream. The other Etherious tried to aid her, but none of their efforts could dispell her listlessness.

She held long conversations with anyone willing to indulge her; Mard Gear, Keyes, Seilah, just about every archdevil made time. Yet none could give a satisfying answer to her greatest question: what use was there for them? In a world where nothing mattered, how could they declare their own purpose?

Kyoka knew that, once upon a time, she simply believed. They all still did except for her. It was a secret, one she hoped they never even suspected; Kyoka stopped to believe in her own supremacy. Grinding humans to dust under her clawed feet no longer made sense when she was just as worthless as them. But Tartaros would not understand. Rather, they could not understand. Kyoka realised this much over the many conversations with her family. Being Etherious was to stand above humans; it would take sharing her gruesome death to realise.

Seilah may have guessed, being the closest to Kyoka out of everyone. She spent the most time with her, likely even noticed Kyoka's attempts to evade joining any raid at all. Not that she ever asked. Not that Kyoka ever explained.

On what few raids she had to participate in, she did nothing beside wander. Devastation did not put her mind at ease. Rather the opposite, if anything. Kyoka impulsively looked the other way whenever she found survivors; whether they hid or fled, she did nothing. It made her feel something again, a slight pang of wonder; would they survive in the wilderness? Carry word of Tartaros' mostly quiet work to their rulers?

She did not know and ultimately did not care. Over a year passed since her death. Months since she woke. Nothing mattered in the end.

Then, one day, the monotony broke. Mard Gear called a general conference and greeted everyone with a worried frown.

"Acnologia is moving," he opened, which earned him the room's rapt attention. "We could evade a direct encounter, but I pulled back our scouts." Two tired Etherious leaning against the wall waved weakly. "But from their reports, he is flying toward Fiore at great speed. Something must have caught his attention there."

Her mind's eye immediately flickered back to deadly white and a black scythe. She shuddered silently. Then she wondered just who would come out on top: the specter of death or the dragon king? She pitied whoever was caught up between them if that was truly his target.

"Maybe he kills the Devourer on the way," someone joked from the crowd. Laughter followed and even Mard Gear inclined his head with a faint smile.

"That would be a wonderful event," he concurred.

The meeting devolved into meaningless reiteration from there. Kyoka dwelled on her previous feelings; she truly pitied whoever drew Acnologia's attention. Being slaughtered so mercilessly, she realised, was something no one deserved.

This thought stayed with her until long after they were dismissed. Kyoka failed to find sleep that night, mind in turmoil as she pondered. Yet she reached no conclusion, found no solution to expressing her knot of stray feelings. Her mind felt like a haphazard bird's nest, emotions sticking out at odd angles everywhere while barely fulfilling its actual purpose.

Sometime after midnight, she rose. Her book was clutched to her chest, never far from the archdevil. She got used to carrying it and so it followed her on yet another nightly stroll. Mind far away, she simply let her feet carry her wherever; no area was forbidden on Plutogrim, neither inside nor out.

She soon realised she once again visited E.N.D.'s tome. Aimless wandering brought her here at least once every other night. Only this time unresolved feelings weighed more heavy on her; Kyoka stared at the still book as if it held the answer, slowly slumping until her legs barely carried her.

"What do I do?" she asked weakly. "I am nothing, I can be nothing. I have no purpose and know so precious little. Tell me, please, what is there to my life that makes it worth living?"

Tears clouded her vision. Kyoka wanted to live, but every day was agony for how pointless it ended up being. She became more and more accepting of seeking a rapid end. Death scared her still, but less each day. She did not expect an answer but she needed it.

And then, suddenly, warmth enveloped her. For the first time in months, Kyoka's aching soul was soothed. She blinked away the tears, staring at a now gently flaring tome; her hand reached for it unconciously, unafraid. The moment she touched its cover, warmth spread through her arm and into her chest. It drove away the cold, carrying feelings not her own. Safety and comfort flooded her mind, coupled to the mental image of indistinct people. They laughed and a shadowy hand ruffled her hair.

Kyoka began to relax as the message registered. Life was warm with others.

"But I already have family," she ventured faintly. The next pulse of heat carried a wave of curiousity. "It is all of you, right here. Why can I not be happy with them?"

The sensations paused, another pulse stuttering. The book hesitated and she felt warm tendrils dig into her self; Kyoka let it. It was comforting and kind, so she trusted it. From the depths of her memory, it dragged a single image that had been burned there: a dead child, staring at her with wide eyes. Lips unmoving asked just a single question: 'why?' It was accompanied by foreign displeasure. Kyoka shivered.

"You disagree?"

Another flare of heat followed, this one almost sweltering. She began to sweat, but at the same time she felt herself a disappointment again. "I see. I'm sorry. I can not stop them." It faded and became soothing once more. Comforting her, even. Kyoka hoped she was forgiven. At the same time she remained uncertain. "But what do I do?"

There was no response, only warmth. Kyoka accepted the lack of answer, basking in what E.N.D. freely offered. Minutes passed, maybe hours, she could not quite tell.

Then, suddenly, she understood what to do. It did not come from the tome but from herself. She finally got it, but the mere idea tore her heart apart again.

Reaching up hesitantly, Kyoka lifted E.N.D.'s book from its pedestal. No surge of indignation followed, no fiery retribution. It allowed her to hold it. Its edge dug into the crook of her left arm as she pressed it to her chest. Tartaros' most valuable possession. In her right hand was her own book, the most valuable to Etherious Kyoka.

Pressing both to her chest, Kyoka rose and began to walk. Her head was empty, throbbing with a hollow ache E.N.D.'s warmth soothed. Bit by bit her speed increased; soon she did not walk but jog, then run. Dawn was near, but she encountered no one.

Within minutes, Kyoka reached Plutogrim's edge. She leapt off it without even slowing. The moment her feet lost purchase, she forced her body to mutate; large, leathery wings sprouted from Kyoka's back. She quickly glided groundward on a trail of heated air, to be swallowed by the twilight. She did not know where to go or what to do, but she had a goal now; she wanted to find E.N.D. himself. She wanted to know if he would accept her like she was.

Kyoka touched down gently, feet digging into the ground. Her wings receded and eyes adjusted to night vision. She nearly uprooted a lonely mushroom and was about to step down on it, but paused. After prodding and poking the solitary fungus for a moment, she carefully stepped around it. A small sense of wonder dug itself from the depths of her broken heart. Kyoka looked at the world around her with new understanding; she wondered what else she might find, now that she knew to look.

Like this she wandered away, gently guided by a flaming book. Up above in a nearby a tree, a crow watched her silently before taking flight.
 
6.1 Mavis
"I dedicate this work to my beloved wife, Mavis. Her smile brought light back into my world when I could see nothing but darkness."

-excerpt from "The Heart of Magic", foreword

The airship lay quiet, far more so than it ever had. Their forces were gone, eradicated or scattered.

Precht Gaebolg was in a daze. Halfway between sleep and waking, he still mused on the events that transpired. He was so certain to find Zeref on Tenrou Island after his agents never encountered him anywhere else. But what he found was not the Black Wizard, no. It was Makarov and his brood, holding their S-Class trials on Fairy Tail's sacred isle. The same place he first met Mavis a hundred years ago.

He fashioned himself a powerful wizard. Even Makarov and his exceptional talent fell before him, but the boy was getting old. He pushed himself as far as he could. There was no trace of the fourth master he heard about, Priscilla. Had she led the counterattack, Precht may not be alive anymore. Yet where Makarov failed, his brood persevered; not only did they overcome his forces and even the inner circle of Grimoire Heart, they went head to head with Precht himself.

Then Magic Council forces landed to engage his troops in support of Fairy Tail, making a bad situation worse. And the cherry on top, the reason he had not spoken a word in the last day, was that Acnologia descended upon them all.

At the black dragon's sight, Grimoire Heart's subordinate guilds fled the isle to drown. The Council ships turned tail before even reaching shore. Precht was too battered to get his airship moving, only Ultear's swift actions saved them. She rested against one of the walls, her adopted daughter slash sister Meredy leaned against her shoulder. The pinkette dozed fitfully. Precht envied her and Ultear's exhaustion; at least they could sleep. He was alone with his thoughts.

He danced with magic for a hundred years now. He unearthed truths that no other mortal mind knew. Yet in all this time and all his study, he never once witnessed such violence before. All of Tenrou Island, destroyed in a single blast. Because Fairy Tail had dared resist the dragon king; the only ones who had not fled his mere presence. They fought and now they died for it. The Council forces were destroyed by the shockwave, as were his own.

Yuri's son and great grandson were gone, wiped from the world in an instant. All those promising children, every single spark extinguished. Precht realised their potential far too late.

Only a handful of people manned this airship on the journey back; he knew their names, but did not process. Mind awhirl with horror and wonder, Precht could not stop thinking: just what was he fighting for? What did he seek when in the end it put him at odds with the guild he once adored? When had he stopped being Precht and become Master Hades of Grimoire Heart?

He found no real answer, only regret.

The moment they reached the continent, Precht disembarked. Others shuffled out behind him, quietly waiting for orders he did not have. After staring at his creation, decades ahead of any of its kind, Precht pulled back a single strand of Ethernano. A final spell, included as a fallback no one ever knew about. The airship disintegrated, turning itself into the pure energy he once weaved it from.

"Master?" Meredy inquired softly. "Why did you do that?"

He had no answer. Wordlessly, Precht began to walk. He did not think of a destination. Yet within moments, others walked with him. They left the coast behind, entering a fleetingly familiar woodland.

"Where are we going?" Zancrow asked an hour or two later.

"I... do not know."

He almost coughed, throat parched after who knew how long. A few motions of his finger summoned fresh water to drink; several more split some off for those following him. Precht paid no mind to them or the conversation they began.

Night fell and he stopped to rest for a time.

By daybreak, only Ultear and Meredy remained with him.

Precht blinked, head a little more clear. Then he scoffed at his own tardiness. Served him right for getting whimsical like this. Both women watched him with worry, which elicited a faint huff.

"How ironic," Precht mused. "You two were the least loyal and yet you are the last who stay." Ultear froze, but he waved off her denials. "Of course I knew of your own ambitions, my dear. I was already old when you were born and I always understood people well enough."

"Why did you never say anything?"

Her raven hair was matted after their ordeal. Disheveled, far from the neat and tidy lady she often mimed. Funny how this exchange felt more genuine than most they had over the last decade. Precht allowed himself a chuckle, and to forget what happened for a moment. "To alienate you needlessly? Your own designs required finding Zeref as well, so there was not much of an issue."

She nodded slowly, but he paid no mind and stood. "You are free to leave. I have nothing more to give and nothing you might want. I am just walking where my feet carry me."

Perhaps it was his wistful tone. Maybe pity for an ancient man confronted with reality. It may just be a trace of genuine care. Whatever the reason, they stayed. When Precht continued to walk, they followed. Meredy held onto Ultear's sleeves, the tender action belying her often expressionless facade. She was still fourteen. Or was it fifteen? He forgot.

They passed through the forest and beheld a vast city. Precht stared at it momentarily, trying to make sense of where he was. Definitely Fiore, the architecture made that clear. But with how painfully familiar it sat cuddled against the bay, a grand cathedral dominating its skyline, it could only be one.

His feet carried him forward, through rune-addled streets. Past cheerful townsfolk who knew nothing of what transpired. Precht envied their ignorance at times; his life would have been easier, had he just never known.

Through the streets and past the streams, he came to stand in front of a gargantuan building. Flanked by Ultear and Meredy, Precht stared up at the sign he so proudly wore for half a century. The building changed, but the sign remained. Crimson like the day Mavis first envisioned it. Fairy Tail.

After staring at it longingly, Precht shuffled forward. The gate stood open to welcome passersby into a lively taproom; roaring fires warmed the inside, disregarding Autumn's cold. His gaze traversed the area, taking stock of many people lost in conversation. Young and old, men and women interspersed without rhyme or reason. An excited buzz surrounded them all, though the reason behind it escaped him. Nonetheless, he finally understood what Makarov saw in them; he changed the guild from when Precht was Master, but it had become a warmer, kinder place. Not weak like Precht convinced himself it turned out, never weak. It was the exact kind of guild she would love. A home for all those who were lost.

Gaze still wandering, he sat down at an empty table. Everything around him was large, bright, and welcoming. Precht felt out of place, instinctively hunching forward the slightest bit. His dissociation from reality still persisted by the time a barmaid approached; he absently ordered a drink. Ultear and Meredy requested some food as well; odd how he did not even feel peckish.

"Haven't seen you around before, old man!" a cheerful voice shattered his funk with the force of a sledgehammer. Precht blinked a few times before focussing; the man who talked to him was middle-aged, sporting navy blue hair and a bright grin. He had his mug raised. "Great place, isn't it?"

He stared at the jolly man for a long moment before realising an answer was expected. "Yes," Precht murmured. "Yes, it is. It used to be smaller, though." More homely as well.

"Yeah, we built it bigger after some assholes tore it down. Think it made the news in January?" The man glanced to his brunette companion, whose brow creased. He breathed out a puff of smoke from his pipe that turned into a thumbs up.

He did hear of that, but paid it little mind at the time.

"Oh right, name's Macao."

"Precht."

Despite his less than stellar mood, he let himself be drawn into conversation. Macao was not even born by the time Precht left the guild to Makarov. He was clearly the result of changing times that left the older man behind long ago. Nonetheless, it was relaxing to talk. To just let himself be regaled with chatter and some gossip. To not think back to the past two days. Precht also sampled the ale the barmaid, Alicia, brought. It ran down his throat with aching familiarity. He could not help but study his mug, muttering: "Even the booze is nostalgic."

Macao laughed cheerfully. Ultear and Meredy were confused, but also chewing on their food. Into the moment, Alicia returned with another mug. "On the house," she pre-empted him cheerfully. Precht stared down at the cherry red liquid he had not ordered.

"Ah, that's our own berry wine. Come on, take a sip, it's great!"

The younger man raised his mug again and many others followed. The merry mood coaxed even a faint smile from Precht himself. He raised the smaller cup in response and sipped while everyone else went bottoms up.

When the fruity taste hit his tongue, he fell still. Nostalgia was no word to describe the sensation. For a moment, Precht was young again. Vividly, he saw a brighter oaken table. A bubbly blonde peered over it with big eyes, giddily waving her quill. A small stack of parchments lay to her right hand. Mavis eagerly awaited his judgement. Yuri to his right threw back his cup and laughed uproariously. Out the window, he could see Warrod plucking more berries from their small garden.

Precht shuddered, composure cracking. His free hand came up to cover his eyes as he burst into tears. The entire room halted their beginning party in confusion. He did not notice, too caught up in the past. Quiet sobs almost echoed in the silence, his remaining subordinates staring in shock.

Just what had he done?

The sheer magnitude of his failures came crashing down on Precht. He abandoned the guild and consigned so many of its treasured members to oblivion. He abandoned Warrod and Mavis, lost his way, and became a monster. All for a cure he never found. So he wept; for the fourty years he wasted, for the friends he betrayed, for the many sins now weighing on his back.

When he finally managed to open his eyes, a glint of gold filled his blurry sight. Wiping them clear, what he saw took his breath away; Mavis, as pristine and beautiful as she had always been. She gave him her usual angelic smile.

"Welcome home, Precht. You were gone for so long."

The gentle greeting made Meredy flinch; she never even noticed the blonde's arrival. Some exclamations from Fairy Tail's wizards followed, making it clear this was not a delusion. Or rather, it was not something only he saw. Precht reached out to touch his dream come to life, only for his hand to pass right through her cheek. Mavis' smile dimmed.

"I am still as I was, but at least this much I can do now. I figured it out a few years after you left, but we never found you. Where did you go? How could this happen?"

She knew.

Precht slumped further, unable to meet her gaze anymore. "I have no excuse," he began, defeated. The words bubbled out of his heart regardless: "I tried to find a cure, at first. I went to find Zeref and learn what he knew, but along the way... I found the path to a world unlike this one. I went out of curiousity, thinking maybe alien methods may help. It was far more primal, more genuine, greater even. I slowly let myself be consumed by ambition and beheld the darkness from which magic is born. I saw the true origin of Ethernano. I studied with great scholars, was granted audience with kings, and fell to the whispers of a serpent.

"When I returned here, I forgot what I set out to do. I was so fascinated by the truths I found. I am so sorry."

He dared a peek. Ultear and Meredy were both flabbergasted. The guild listened attentively, some confused but mostly just interested. And Mavis, she smiled. Ever so faintly. Her small hand covered his, conveying even warmth.

"I forgive you," she said, and Precht's shame burned even greater. "But that is only me."

In the silence that followed, a muscular fellow with just one arm spoke: "So, er, who are you two exactly?"

Precht did not know how to answer, or how to speak at all. Mavis heaved a soft sigh before putting on another smile. This one was fake, though. "I founded this guild," she revealed softly, then motioned for him. "And Precht here succeeded me. He left the position with Makarov over fourty years ago."

This earned some exclamations and disbelief, but it also gave him something to focus on beside his guilt. "...I was meaning to ask," Precht began hesitantly. "Why did Makarov oversee the trials on Tenrou Island? He is not the master anymore. And why Tenrou to begin with?"

Mavis shrugged. "Master Priscilla insisted he do it this year because she is too new. I think she wanted more time to work on you-know-what." Which likely meant Mavis' own condition. He nodded and she continued: "And after they had to postpone this year's trials due to the issue with Phantom Lord, we decided to make it special. That also required pushing it forward a bit."

"How'd you know about the trials?" Wakaba interjected curiously. Macao's drinking buddy appeared genuinely curious, but his question only had Precht slump again. Mavis obviously knew, but they did not. None of them had been told yet.

"My sins run far deeper than just what I did to strangers. Grimoire Heart is no more, the Baram Alliance has fallen. I brought everything to bear on Tenrou Island, so certain Zeref would be there." The sudden shock and emerging anger, he could deal with. A weak chuckle escaped him regardless: "And yet, the best I could build in fourty years was found wanting. Fairy Tail persevered."

His reassurance calmed them some, but the agitation remained. Ultear and Meredy were severely uncomfortable now, their half-eaten meals since abandoned. Precht sought Mavis' gaze above all others. "Oh Mavis, how couldn't I realise before it happened? How was I so blinded by my own arrogance?" He made to drink some more berry whine, only to realise the mug was empty. Mavis' smile had vanished entirely. Precht set down the cup with a sigh. "I believe it is time I remove myself.".

"Stay. It wasn't your fault."

His gaze snapped back to Mavis, much like those of everyone else in the room. His friend was serious, not to mention solemn: "If anyone, it was mine. Mine for running away so long ago, for not telling you anything when I still could. You spent your life trying to cure me, how could I demand you leave?" They stared at each other. Precht was flabbergasted by this display of trust. He slowly sat again, but found no verbal response.

"You talk like the world just ended," Macao chimed in with creased brows. "It's all fine if the youngsters beat you up, isn't it?"

The remnants of Grimoire Heart shuddered as one. Precht could not meet this poor man's gaze. His throat constricted from having to be the bearer. Ultear took this burden off his shoulders, voice quiet: "The world did end. Acnologia came to Tenrou Island."

Silence followed. Everyone knew this name, much as expected. Even as he lived in obscurity, the dragon king's legacy echoed into the future.

"No," the one-armed man breathed. "No, no, no!" He grabbed Ultear by her collar, glaring into her eyes with clear panic. "What happened! Where are they?! Answer me!"

"Safe."

This single word surprised even Precht. Everyone's attention flickered back to Mavis, who wore a soft smile. Pride shone on her expression, just like it laced her words: "They joined what power they had left in defiance of death and it was enough for me to cast Fairy Sphere. Tenrou Island is gone, but I saved them all."

Precht stared for a long moment. Then he huffed, breaking into weak chuckles. It felt uncomfortably loud in the quiet, but he did not care. It was just too funny. "Always so full of surprises, you are. When will they return?"

"I don't know."

His chuckles cut off. Mavis heaved another soft sigh and explained to the confused crowd: "Fairy Sphere is the ultimate defensive magic, devised by me and Precht. We can call it that because it's no shield. Rather, it hides the shielded object or person in time; they are not there when the attack hits. Unfortunately, I had just enough time and power to cast the spell, not to designate an exit point." She winced, much like Precht did. "Maybe sometime in the next ten years?"

He could tell Ultear was more than a little interested in this revelation, what with her obsession with time. Before she could ask any questions however, an unfamiliar sort of pressure began to envelop the entire building. People shuddered, just as a shiver ran down Precht's spine; an omen hung over them.

The only one unaffected was Mavis, although her projection flickered dangerously. Her brows exploded upward.

"What is she- Precht, stop her!"

The shout caught his attention; Mavis pointed toward the basement. "She's breaking the seal! Quick, I can't-"

She vanished, cutting off mid-sentence.

A beat.

Precht rose so fast his chair flew backward, racing down the stairs and right toward this foreboding sensation. Shouts followed him, as did the people who called this place home. He paid them no mind, breaking the fake wall he once built with a single punch. Precht did not even slow down, bursting into his old study. Yet once there, he was immediately rooted to the spot.

Before him stood an avatar of death, accompanied by a bare echo of tormented screams. Settled on her haunches, tail resting on the clean stone floor. Her back was turned, but Precht did not dare approach for fear and fear alone. Large hands cautiously stripped away the purple crystal he encased Mavis in; wisps of malevolent darkness surrounded the far smaller woman.

"What, what...."

His voice broke, drowned out by the pressure. Those who came up behind him were just as stunned, beholding the greater being before them.

Once Mavis was freed, the darkness began to surge forward. A wave of black death, unstoppable in its wake and insatiable in its hunger. It grasped for them all... only to be pulled back. It clung to Master Priscilla's hand, unable to advance. A firm "No" from her had the cloud fall entirely still. It wrapped around one of her fingers while the other hand cradled Mavis against her bosom.

White light enveloped them both. The draconic being exhaled; on her breath, she carried memories. Precht saw it so clear as if he had been there. A thrashing dragon, wings skewered by a dozen log-sized arrows. Scales of stone were peeled away by lightning bolts as an entire company of silver-clad knights descended on it. The beast snapped and clawed, killing half of the assailants before a thousand cuts of mighty blades and spears brought it low.

"This is the end," Priscilla proclaimed as the memory faded. "No more. Calm thy malevolent anima."

More flashes of foreign memory followed. They beheld various people tortured to insanity by eternal life; the satisfaction that came with it almost felt like his own, intoxicating in its intensity. Then anger followed, a primal rage the likes of which Precht never felt before.

Another "No" from Priscilla extinguished the torrent before it could drown the humans. "Thy fury I empathise with, but not thy choices. To hate the gods, to hate the Lord, to hate the flame. But to hate indiscriminately whoever holds might is unbecoming of kin. Cease, Ankhseram."

A silent roar shook the building and the dark shroud bubbled, but Priscilla weathered it stoically. Precht could only watch in awe how this being remained completely unaffected by the most devious curse known to history.

Ankhseram's spirit kept howling fury, but other voices cried out in response. They created a cacophony, screaming against each other. Only the single voice began to quieten, its impact lessening. The curtain of darkness slowly left Mavis and was absorbed by Priscilla. With each viscous shadow she consumed, the choir of hatred became more harmonious. And when nothing was left to take from Mavis, a symphony of wrath reverberated through existence.

Precht only had a few seconds to appreciate this primal force, though. The screams fell silent as one, extinguished.

In the ensuing silence, Priscilla slumped forward with an exhausted sigh. A set of clothes rose from a nearby table, wrapping itself around the stirring blonde she still held.

He could only stare at what just took place. Mavis was lowered to the ground, where she stood on shaky legs. Awake. Her voice was horse from disuse, a croaking question asked: "W-What did you do?"

"Ankhseram is revered as a deity in these lands," Priscilla led weakly. "And to thou he may as well have been. The first to fall in the First War. I understand now that his malevolent spirit came to Earthland long ago, sustained by his hatred of the beings that cast him down. Ever since, he cursed any powerful human to an eternal life of solitude." She paused there to right herself. Precht could still not see her face, but the words struck a chord within him. Understanding. Yet it all fled when she finished: "His spirit has been quelled. The curse is broken."

Mavis was speechless, as was Precht. He shuffled forward, barely able to walk in a straight line after what he witnessed. After seconds that felt like years, he knelt before Mavis. Running a hand through her matted hair, feeling the warmth of her skin under his fingers, he could finally believe it was her. She stared back, tears brimming in her eyes. Mavis' smile reemerged moments later. She stood with some difficulty, steadying herself on his shoulders.

"If it's broken, then I need to go. There is someone I have to find."

She did not say who, but Precht knew. He nodded weakly. But a large hand barred their exit. Priscilla's expression was a blank mask, her voice without any inflection: "All of you, out." She glanced to the thunderstruck wizards still gaping at what happened. "Now."

They filed out in an unorderly mob, each trying not to be last through the door. Ultear and Meredy remained, uncertainly shuffling around. A mild glare from Priscilla had them flee as well.

Only once she was certain everyone was gone did the current master turn back to them. "You need not seek him any longer," she said. Her voice cracked, revealing the anguish underneath: "He is no more."

Mavis stared up at her with wide eyes, mute as she tried to process this. Precht did not know what to say either. Zeref of all people, gone? Despite his immortality? Even though logic said it made sense, actually accepting the fact Ankhseram's curse ended was a different matter.

Seeing that neither of them spoke, Priscilla carried on. She was unable to meet their gazes. "When I became Master, I was of the idea I would free you as I freed him, with a swift and lasting death. I did not know then what I know now, and I am so, so sorry."

Mavis' eyes began to fill with tears. He barely caught his old friend as her legs gave out. Mavis sobbed against his chest; her incoherent babbling was interspersed by desperate "no"s. He wanted to ask why Priscilla veered away from her original course, but Mavis' distress took priority. For the first time in fourty years, Precht eshewed knowledge. It had never felt more right.

Meanwhile, the giantess crawled away to give them space. She let Mavis air her grief in peace. Precht awkwardly rubbed her back, forcing back his burning curiousity as long as he could.

Once his friend calmed down some, he addressed Priscilla: "I do not understand. What exactly changed the matter? Was it whatever turned her catatonic?"

She winced. When an answer was given, her voice was gentle and heavy with guilt. Each sentence made Mavis' sniffles worsen further and by the end Precht felt like Laxus punched him in the gut again: "...Ankhseram's curse worked as it always has. It attempted to kill all life. Mavis fell catatonic whenever it became active because she forced it outward with all her strength. Every bit of her magical prowess and will, aligned to a singular goal. To protect her child."
 
6.2 A Scholar's Tale
"Fearing death is natural to all life. It defines our evolution, from tiny mice to mighty dragons and beyond. Some turn to magic and seek immortality, which is something it can not give. In fact, it will not give immortality, for magic is alive and knows better than any human. No one wants to live forever. As one who is immortal, I would know. I fear death no longer, but rather that I will never die."

-excerpt from "The Heart of Magic"

Heavy silence hung above the taproom. The gates were closed and Fairy Tail sat quietly in contemplation, excepting Priscilla. The master seethed in her favourite corner, having learned of Acnologia's appearance on Tenrou Island. Someone else went to contact Mystogan, the only S-ranking Fairy Tail wizard not assisting in the trials.

Mavis was nestled against Precht, who felt a mite uncomfortable offering comfort. Yuri and later Warrod were her preferred teddy bears. But neither of them was here now, so he crushed the feeling. Then there were the worried gazes Mavis drew from around the room. Curiousity was mixed in as well.

After some time, he gently nudged her. "How far along are you?"

The response took a while. Mavis' eyes quivered but did not leak any more; she frowned, then sighed and rubbed her stomach. "That crystal kept my body in perfect stasis. Him, too. I can't say how long exactly, but I should be showing soon."

He nodded along, once again wondering how he could have missed this for fourty years. A soft whisper followed, barely reaching his ears: "It shouldn't be like this."

Precht squeezed his old friend in silent agreement. Then he paused when an audible growl broke the silence; Mavis averted her gaze, ears turning red. Precht could not help but chuckle.

"How about a meal for your founder?" he called with a raised voice.

Alicia stared at him in incomprehension for a moment, clearly deep in thought. Then she blinked, put on a smile, and dashed away. "Right on!"

The response drew a faint smile out of Mavis. She soon began to drool when a feast fit for a queen was spread before her. She immediately made to dig into the pudding, only to stop herself. With a glance downward and an even more desperate sigh, Mavis floated a bowl of salad into her hands. Her demeanor changed with the first bite, though; she began to inhale the food with such joy that even Ultear sported an indulgent smile. It was such a simple thing, yet Precht could feel the guild's collective spirit lift.

Meredy eyed the enticing food for a while, especially that chocolate pudding Mavis put aside earlier. Precht still wondered if he should order some or let the girl speak up herself when an empty bowl floated over and magically scooped up half the pudding. Mavis let it dance in front of the flummoxed pinkette. Her aloof demeanor melted under the blonde's smile. When a spoon followed the bowl, Meredy mumbled thanks and began to help herself.

"How old are you exactly?" Ultear inquired once Mavis finished off the salad.

The older woman tapped her fork against her lips. "Oh, I was cursed at thirteen, but I'm not sure if my growth stopped or I was just done growing already. Maybe I grew a bit since then?" She mulled it over for a moment, leaving the question unanswered. Precht nudged her. "Ah, sorry. I became comatose around twenty-five. Right now, let's see; it is still 785, yes?" Ultear nodded. "Good. And November just started, so I should be 112. Amazing how spry this grandma is, isn't it?"

Mavis giggled and began to devour a well-cooked steak. Precht huffed weakly, well aware of Ultear's renewed smile. "I see you understand what drew us to her a century ago," he teased. The smile vanished, but she knew he knew regardless.

When Mavis began to chatter at Meredy, he decided to leave the women to it. Instead his attention and since stalled curiousity returned to Priscilla; while everyone else slowly processed, the giantess had not moved at all. She simply kept staring at the wall.

Leaving his friend be for now, Precht strode over to the larger woman's side.

"Is your temper that great?" he inquired with honest curiousity. The look thrown his way made him feel smaller than he ever had. A shadow of death hung in those humongous eyes, tension running through her entire body. Precht could force himself to be calm, but his heart skipped a beat regardless; instinct told him there sat a being that made sport of hunting apex predators.

It was a familiar feeling. Only a single being, one person, elicited its like over Precht's long life. That settled it.

"...are you Everlasting?"

Now this distracted her. Anger waned in favour of surprise and curiousity. Priscilla studied Precht like a great feline studied prey, but he did not let that deter him. Rather, he elaborated on his conclusions: "On my journey through Lordran, I met Duke Seath in my pursuit of knowledge. He was the only other person to hold that look to themselves." Total superiority, he did not say. The only reason he did not take offense was that he knew with certainty the sentiment was true. Every instinct in his body screamed to tread carefully, even when no immediate danger presented itself. "I learned a great many things from him."

"How peculiar."

The subtle pressure vanished with those two words. Precht could breathe more freely, even though Priscilla now faced him fully. "Would you care to tell the whole story? Without ever mentioning the kinslayer's name again?"

"If I may hear your own in turn? I never thought to meet another Everlasting dragon, especially not, well, like this." He vaguely motioned for her very human body. Priscilla nodded without hesitation, sealing their deal.

"How to start," Precht continued idly, thinking back. "It has been so long. About a year after leaving the guild to Makarov, I came upon a realisation. It allowed me to traverse dimensions, so I left Earthland behind for a time. I wanted to find greater knowledge of magic, but what I found was... different." He hesitated there, throwing a glance to the rest of Fairy Tail. They were listening in alright. But at this point, all he could do was accept his greatest secrets being revealed to the guild. They knew part of it already, anyway. "The nameless realm where Lordran lies is the root world. Unformed and in flux, but an eternal foundation to many others, including Earthland. Its various aspects cast their shadow into the multiverse."

He had the room's undivided attention at this point. Precht huffed. "But I get ahead of myself. It took a long time until I understood that. At first I arrived in the kingdom of New Londo, where I spent a year learning from the local scholars. They taught me the soul arts, or sorcery if you want. I taught them principles of our own magic, but with so little Ethernano in the air, casting anything at all was a serious problem.

"What few demonstrations I could give intrigued the four kings, though. I stepped before them several times, they were great men." He had to pause there, having reminded himself of his sins. "But as there was little left to learn after a year, I continued my travels. Izalith was my next destination. Quelana, daughter of the witch, accepted me as her student. I spent another two years learning to harness my soul's light in a much different manner, through dance." Priscilla nodded courtly, obviously familiar with the witches. Precht could not help but sigh. "But I did not find what I came to seek in the swamps and sprawling cities, either. I set out for a cure to Mavis' condition and so I eventually moved on.

"Quelana was so kind to escort me to Anor Londo. With her and the four kings' endorsements, I was granted entry. I was even granted audience with the royal family." Just a single time he stood before them, yet the memory still shone brightly. Precht shook it off. "My outlandish techniques drew their interest and I found myself outmatched for the first time. Everything I had to teach, they soaked up like a sponge. Princess Gwynevere granted access to the royal archives in exchange, and I continued my studies with the brightest scholars of the realm." Again, without success.

"What of Lord Gwyn?"

"Ah, yes." Precht could not tell if she was curious or angry, but at this point he trusted in her self-discipline. "He received me, but deemed my tale of another world irrelevant to his own interests. Not to mention I could not prove much with the lack of Ethernano. What he did give me, once I exhausted the means of his own, was access to the Duke's archives."

Priscilla clearly recognised the place from just this much. Precht shuddered, retelling this part: "I did not make the connection before, but you have the same countenance; eternity carved into flesh. And as before, my bringing curious knowledge and foreign tales opened many doors. Duke Se-, he allowed me to stay in exchange for my knowledge. His channelers categorised all of it, stored away somewhere in that vast library." His brows creased as he recalled what else he heard. "Speaking of, I know they gathered knowledge from across the known world for some sort of project. He once told me he sought dragon corpses throughout the lands. They brought back their scales in neat and tagged packages. I heard whispers that Se-, er, he sought scales of his own."

Before he could even ask if there was anything to that rumour, Priscilla let out a derisive snort. "Only lesser beings would even imagine such nonsense," she ruled immediately. Precht inclined his head.

"I will take your word for it. Do you happen to know what it was he did with those scales?"

"I never saw anything relating to such a project. Whatever it was, he must have sequestered it away or concluded it before my birth." Her thoughtful expression told Precht she was still musing on the possible undertakings. Soon enough, she shrugged it off and motioned for him to continue.

"I spent another six months or so in the archives. The duke received me every other week to discuss the limits of existence. We even developed the practice of soul manipulation together. From him I learned some truly ethereal techniques."

"Such as?"

Precht took a deep breath and focussed. The Ethernano in his body fluttered, interlinking with the fabric of reality itself. Then he put his will into it, straining his entire being. And the air around the room grew warmer, warmer, without any Ethernano stimulating it directly. The roaring fires were overtaken. By the time Precht faltered, wheezing, he heated the room further than the warmest Summer day. The entire guild stood befuddled, excepting Priscilla. The dragon stared at him in awe.

He took a few deep breaths to soothe his thundering heart. His old limbs were shaking from the exertion and his entire body ached. Once Precht caught his breath, he explained: "Through the combination of all the knowledge I obtained, I managed to bend reality itself to my will. It is not a useful technique for me, far too draining, but it works well for intimidation and other covert tricks. The duke was just as impressed."

He could not help but feel a little smug. Even just a moment of reaching the might of Everlasting dragons was a greater success than any other. Priscilla seemed to agree. She momentarily studied the sweating wizards around them and had the air cool down again. It followed her demand like an obedient pet, without any sign of difficulty. "But alas," he sighed, "it does not compare to the real deal."

"It is impressive nonetheless," she disagreed. "I did not even believe it possible. Now, your tale?"

Precht inclined his head, tired after his little display. "After I built a rapport with the duke, I told him of Mavis and Ankhseram's curse. He became intrigued and thoughtful, but then he laughed and told me there is no cure to the wrath of a greater being." He grimaced. "I may have taken that a bit more personally than intended and left the following week. My final stop in the root world was Oolacile, a human realm. I received an audience with Princess Dusk easily enough and settled to study for another two years.

"Unfortunately, this is another sin I have to confess. A great serpent came to Oolacile during my stay. He spoke of secrets to greater power and ability, if only we dug up a certain grave. I advocated in favour of doing so and was the first to put the shovel to work." He did not care much for the distaste on display around him. Priscilla listened without any judgement. "And there I found it. In the grave of Primeval Man, a darkness clung to his body. The moment we unearthed him, we were drenched in Ethernano. More of it than I ever felt in one place before."

He left a meaningful pause for everyone to process the implications. Precht nearly went insane from the realisation that day, but just speaking of it would be easier on them. "I found the origin of Ethernano, our magic, and this very world. It rests in the ever-dead corpse of the first human."

He heaved a weak sigh. "And this is where my story ends. I strained myself beyond my limits, picked the brains of Lordran's best and brightest. After finding the truth, I realised there was little left there. With enough Ethernano to use my full abilities, I left for Earthland. Nearly five years spent in that place, yet no closer to a solution I don't think I even wanted anymore."

When it became clear he was finished, Priscilla inclined her head. "I see," she mumbled, ignoring the whispered conversations breaking out all around them. "The kinslayer was right. You never had a chance to cleanse Mavis."

He began to scowl, but the anger faded as she elaborated: "Even now the Everlasting dragons scream their fury and curse those who once cast them down. I am kin and so Everlasting Ankhseram listened when I spoke."

"I see," he echoed her earlier response, slumping forward. "I am just glad that it is done. Now, what of your own story?"

"I am afraid there is little to tell," Priscilla prefaced with a faint shrug. "I was born under the kinslayer's watch. How he created me, I can not quite tell. His memories elude me still, as if he does not want me to know... yet? But my conceited self did not even consider to ask, or to attempt coexistence with the gods. For my hubris, they seized me within weeks and imprisoned me within a painting."

He had not heard of such a painting before. Precht's brow rose on its own. "Did you try to escape?"

"Hah. No. At first I raged, of course, but by then I was already inside. So I studied the painting's makeup, learned how to tear it apart at the seams. It took a long time." Priscilla frowned. "And once I finally understood, I had lived long enough to realise my folly. Seeking battle with the gods meant to die. And that, I did not want. So I remained, tending to those exiled with me. Over time I learned to rein in my temper. Until one day I was swallowed by a hole in the sky and landed in the woods near Magnolia."

"You are certainly not like your creator," Precht mused. "Before that display earlier, it never occurred to me you could be Everlasting. We are but ants to them and they care about as much when interacting with us."

"And that," Priscilla ended softly, "was our collective failing. We did not offer lesser races the respect they deserved, then were caught unaware when they called us to battle."

He nodded along. Most of the crowd had broken into individual conversations by now, discussing what they learned. Despite the heavy and plain unbelievable truths however, it seemed no one even considered to be lied to. The guild as a whole reminded him of Yuri in that regard; he definitely underestimated what Makarov made of it.

"I-"

He was cut off when the gate flew open. A detachment of Rune Knights dashed inside, led by a female captain. Dozens of spell circles flared up in neat formation, matched immediately by the wizards present.

"Ultear Malkovich," the woman in charge shouted, "you are under arrest! Surrender yourself peacefully and be judged for your crimes by the Magic Council!"

Fairy Tail hesitated, confused. Precht ran a hand down his face as he realised what must have happened; someone recognised Ultear on their way through town. The woman herself stared owlishly at the weapons levelled at her; Meredy bristled nearby.

Before things could escalate, Priscilla rose to her impressive height. Her voice was even, filling the entire room: "I believe you are overstepping your bounds, Captain. Any legally recognised wizard guild may enforce the law in their own properties; unless you bring proof that my guild is unable to subdue her ourselves, you may not apprehend her."

Precht could not help but stare. So did Ultear and Meredy, as well as the Rune Knights.

"You shield a known criminal?" the captain demanded with calm that belied her anger. When Priscilla did not relent, the men and women under her command slowly began to drop the spells. Weapons were lowered, but the tension grew.

Precht had precious seconds to consider his options: he could leave now, throw Ultear to the wolves and carry on. He could stay and fight, take her and Meredy to run away. Build something new with them, if they wished for it. But in the end, Precht disregarded both of these options. He ran away for fourty years, it was time to face the music.

His steps echoed loudly in the tense silence. Eyes flickered to him, but kept returning to Ultear. Only Mavis held his gaze as he approached. Chances were she guessed his decision. Once he stood in front of her, he held out his hands. "I am Precht Gaebolg, founder and master of Grimoire Heart." Every single Rune Knight snapped his way, raising their enchanted weapons again. He huffed. "And I surrender. Mavis, if you would?"

"Of course. Uh, one moment."

The pitter-patter of bare feet on wood sounded as she darted away. Then followed rapid rummaging behind the bar, cut off by a cheer. Mavis reemerged a moment later, sporting a crimson guild mark on her right foot. It looked like a tiny mirror version of the current master's, amusingly enough.

She returned to him with three pairs of magic-restraining handcuffs. He obediently let her put them on. When their eyes went to Ultear, she shied away. Precht offered her a smile. "Come along now. It is time we be judged as is proper. I will see what I can do to keep the worst from you two."

No one spoke as the time wizard slowly extended her hands. Mavis cuffed her, then Meredy. She then snapped her fingers. "Elfman, Macao, Wakaba, Nab, Max, with me. We will escort those three to Era. Pris, I will meet you there?"

"Of course."

Be it the diminutive blonde's commanding tone or the fact Priscilla went along with her, everyone followed her order without question. The Rune Knights stood rigidly but clearly in wonder, at least until their captain sighed. She muttered something unintelligible about Fairy Tail before making a dismissive motion. "Very well, then we shall escort your escort. Lead on."

It followed a journey per train to castle Era, rebuilt greater than it stood when Ultear tore it down.

Then came an entire month of hearings before the Magic Council itself. Precht freely admitted to having groomed both Ultear and Meredy into following his own designs since they were children. In Meredy's case, she still was a minor before the law. He knew full well that most of the blame would now lie on him, but it was the least bit of recompense he could offer. Not to mention that Precht could still bargain. He did study the case of Oracion Seis after all.

So he bartered his most prized possession: knowledge. Notable members and hideouts of various dark guilds, magical tomes he sequestered away in safehouses, advancements made in the field of magic. The sheer breadth of information he offered freely left the Council stumped.

On top of it, Fairy Tail's Priscilla spoke fervently in his defense. None of the councillors understood at first, but over time it became more clear; Precht Gaebolg was the second master of Fairy Tail after all. Seeing his pristine record and that it lasted until the day he left his duty with Makarov Dreyar, some were slowly convinced to grant leniency. Their discussion lasted long regardless, seeing how deep his crimes ran.

"Are you still not certain?" an old voice interrupted them one evening. Heads turned to greet Warrod Sequen with a nod. The ancient man chuckled, striding into the Council's private chamber without a care in the world. He was a frequent guest, bringing refreshments and levity many of them dearly needed.

"This matter requires careful consideration," Org responded gruffly. "You used to be in the same guild, are you here to pull some strings for him?"

"Oh, absolutely." Despite the affirmation, every single councillor accepted a single cup of wine. Made from the exact same berries that brought Precht himself to tears a month ago. Warrod chuckled merrily and grew a chair of vines to rest on. "Fairy Tail keeps together. Precht turned himself in when he had no need to. He truly regrets losing his way and so we forgave him. But you are not impressed by heartful rhetoric, young man."

Org, already a grandfather himself, grunted noncommittally. "Then you have another argument for us?"

The entire table waited, curious what wisdom the oldest Wizard Saint would have for them. He grinned in response, displaying full teeth despite his age.

"Precht is the most gifted wizard since Zeref himself. He decisively proved that to you these last few weeks. He forgot more about magic than most learn in their lifetime. And he is willing to make amends. I say let him." Everyone hung on his gnarly lips by now. "Let him lend his expertise to improve magical development by decades. We already saw good success with the remnants of Oracion Seis and others, too. The system works."

Some others nodded along, pleased that the idea they spearheaded was acknowledged. Chairman Org ran a hand down his neatly combed beard in thought.

"With Acnologia's emergence, we will certainly need every capable mind to devise countermeasures," he mused. Master Priscilla approached the Council just a week prior, bringing news of the last dragon's weakness. Warrod's pleased smile remained throughout his quiet pondering.

The mix of factors did the trick; bright and early the next morning, the Council declared its verdict. Ultear and Meredy were both found innocent. Due to her particular actions however, Ultear would not be reinstated as councillor and remained barred from any form of political office for the next decade. She did not care in the slightest, exuberantly embracing Meredy the moment their cuffs were off.

Meanwhile, Precht was found guilty of all charges. Due to his cooperation and free offering of resources, a lesser sentence was imposed: he would dedicate the rest of his life to the advance of magical development, permanently attached to the Bureau of Magic Development. It was about as good as he could expect.

While their former boss went through the details of his sentence, Ultear had to turn down Priscilla. "I am grateful for your offer, but no. I want to be my own woman for a bit before I think about guilds. What about you?"

Meredy shook her head in response, which elicited a faint smile.

Priscilla took their refusal in stride. "Very well. In truth I did not expect you to agree, but wanted to make the offer regardless. If you ever need aid or a place to stay, do not hesitate to visit." Both smiled, though their expressions grew more strained when the dragon began to pet their heads. "I hope you will be alright?"

"We will," Ultear muttered, stepping away from the affectionate giantess. "My Arc of Time is useful enough to get by."

"Pardon, but I am not familiar with this discipline. Could you elaborate?"

"I can manipulate the personal timeline of objects. It does not work on people or animals, but anything else I can fast forward until it turns to dust, or rewind to restore it." She thought back to the many things she broke and restored over the years before shrugging it off. "I combine it with levitation to fight."

Whether the final part registered, she did not know. Priscilla's eyes were gleaming at her like a ravenous wolf stared at a fat cow.

"Um."

"To paraphrase," the larger woman began slowly, giddily, "you can restore anything as long as it is not a person or animal?"

"...yes?"

Within hours, she and Meredy were registered as a freelance wizard team. They were also subcontracted to Fairy Tail. Once Ultear realised what actually happened, she descended into maddened giggles.

"We're their cleanup crew," she crowed, almost hysterical. "Those bastards pay us to let them skip out on Council fines for all the collateral damage!"

She was not even mad; the idea was amazing, not to mention it gave Ultear a steady source of income. She was still laughing by the time they arrived in Magnolia for the party; Mavis insisted. It was barely even awkward, what with Ultear's good mood. Meredy needed some coaxing, but Mavis simply battered through her reserved demeanor.

By the time she pushed the pinkette at Priscilla to talk about learning teleportation magic, which the fourth master was currently studying, Mavis herself found Warrod among the crowd's edge. She beamed up at him and received a gentle pat on the head.

"I'm just glad he will be alright."

"Precht will never not be," Warrod countered cheerfully. "He was always like that. Good thing the Council saw reason, he wouldn't have taken prison time."

"Too proud, I know. How many elite wizards were on guard duty?"

"Heh. It would be faster to name those who weren't. They called together all four of us 'kings', even Godserena was hiding in the backrooms. I'd give old Precht even odds to win anyway."

They shared a laugh over the assessment, but then Mavis winked at her old friend. "More like sixty-five percent, give or take two."

She left behind a chuckling broccoli-man, only to be accosted by Priscilla herself. Mavis' good mood evaporated as it always did when they met. She was grateful about the work put into protecting her friend, but could not forget what Priscilla did. Her heart clenched at the reminder. "A moment, please," the dragon requested, then led the way into the library. "I will not keep you for long, but... well."

A series of three tomes were presented to Mavis without fanfare. She accepted them somewhat curiously, then she saw title and author on the first one. Her eyes grew wide.

Priscilla sighed faintly. "I made copies of each one, but the originals ought to be yours. I read them often, both for their beauty and for his memory. He put everything into these pages, his whole heart. Now they are where they belong."

She was crying again. Mavis sniffled, hugging the books to her chest and somewhat bulging belly. She allowed Priscilla to draw her into a gentle embrace. Half of her wanted to scream; wild magic tore at the uncaring giant who rocked her like a babe. "He told me he will wait for you, on the other side. Wherever it is he went, he will wait there."

She managed not to wail and even reined in the thrashing magic, but it still hurt. Nestling against the offered warmth, Mavis mumbled into her chest: "I wanted to tell him. Fourty years and he never came. No one ever saw him. If he'd come at least once, he would have known."

It hurt so much. Just one visit and none of this would have to happen. But it did happen and so she could only mourn the loss of her love.
 
6.3 Erza's Bizarre Adventure
"A more sophisticated application of Inventory magic is Requip. Where the former already allows to store all matter of non-living objects in a subspace pocket, the latter covers the seamless exchange of equipment in both directions. A trained Requip wizard can change from a broken set of armour into a fresh one in a matter of minutes; less than that if they mastered this discipline. The same goes for clothes, weapons, and any other kind of equipment. Various wizards from collectors to warriors at least dabble in this discipline for its convenience."

-excerpt from "The Soul of Magic"

The last she saw was Acnologia bearing down on them as they clasped hands. Magic sung around them, a symphony conducted by hands not their own. Erza did not close her eyes, ready to face death alongside her family.

Except death did not come. Cloudless sky and dragon both vanished, to be replaced by a great hollow in existence. She spent a timeless eon in this nowhere, faintly aware of her friends. But soon enough, something dragged her forward, away from them; Erza struggled as best she could, but it was futile. Ever stronger the pull became until she felt herself falling forward; her hand slipped out of theirs and she was alone. A sense of vertigo followed despite the absence of surfaces in all directions.

Something massive passed her by in the other direction. Erza could not get a good look beside that it was black; with it came a sense of oppression, of weight far beyond the physical. She shuddered, but then she was past and the impression vanished.

Moments or hours later, she could not quite tell, light shone from a tear in the nothing just ahead. A wound in reality not yet closed. She raced toward it, reaching just before the tear pulled itself shut.

Then Erza Scarlet fell from the sky. Her battered body hit packed dirt after several metres, driving all air from her lungs. She wheezed, staring upward at a slightly too blue sky; crimson tresses pooled around her like freshly spilled blood. The knightess stared upward, heaving for breath as she lay. After all the nothing, her senses needed time to adjust; the sweet scent of flowers and plants, buzzing of insects and birdsong, the song of life was almost unfamiliar now.

After staring at nothing for a few minutes, Erza slowly forced herself to sit. Her body protested, but she did not care. There was a little Ethernano around, enough to cover herself with. She kept drawing it in while studying her surroundings; it soon became apparent she was lucky, having landed on the only spot of bare earth in an entire ruin. Battered stone loomed to all sides, overgrown by plants. In its center flickered an orange glow from a pile of ash and bone, arrayed around a coiled sword.

And a giant mushroom was peeking at her from behind several oversized pots.

Erza did a double-take, gaze snapping back to the peculiar sight. She rubbed her eyes, but the mushroom remained there. Stretched long, with a body of white fibres and a red cap. Two slit-like eyes were focussed on her as much as Erza focussed on the phenomenon. Taking a few steps to the right revealed that it grew from a crack in the far wall. Dozens of normal-sized fungi adorned a root growing up the wall to its side.

Mushroom and human stared at each other for long moments. Then it surprised her again and spoke: "Well met, traveler. Thy scent is quite peculiar, unlike any I ever witnessed. What bringeth thou to fair Oolacile in these trying times?"

Going by their voice, it was a female; her warm alto took all threat from the situation.

After allowing her alienation another moment to reign supreme, Erza pushed it aside. She had seen stranger by now. It took several attempts to respond, though; her throat was dry and talking difficult. "I'm afraid I am lost. I never heard of this place before. Could you tell me where we are?"

"Naturally. Thou will find a brook behind yonder wall, to sate thy thirst."

Erza had half a mind to ask how the mushroom knew what was outside of her sight, but stopped herself. Instead she mumbled thanks and went to grab the water. She exhausted most of her supplies after the battles on Tenrou Island. A generous amount was gathered in her largest pot, which she then carried back to the mushroom. Making sure to keep a respectful distance, Erza built herself a fireplace to boil the water; a spark of fire magic ignited it just fine.

Now that she had some time to absorb Ethernano and refill her empty tank, she could take off the torn armour as well. A wordless flash of light had her garbed in a comfortable, white blouse and long, flaring blue skirt.

"Most impressive," the mushroom commented. "Thou art a sorceress, then?"

Erza shrugged. "Something like that." She stared longingly at the water, but it was barely warm yet. Her throat ached. "Tell me about this place, and I tell you about me when this is done?"

"That is acceptable. Do forgive me, I tend to forget humans are liable to sickness from imbibing water as is." When Erza turned back to her, she chuckled. "Thou didst admirably to hide thy gaze, but I noticed nonetheless. I am a mushroom after all. But where art mine manners? I am Elizabeth, guardian of this sanctuary and godmother of Princess Dusk. Oolacile is a human realm and the home of sorceries. Yet one such as yours, I have never beheld in my life."

Elizabeth wiggled a little, studying Erza's appearance. "If thou art a scholar, here to learn from our own, then thou shall find thy desires requited not. The same if thou art but a visitor. The Abyss hath risen from the remains of Primeval Man. It all but consumed Oolacile whole. Princess Dusk was since taken as well. Only husks remain in our fair realm."

The sudden gravity gave Erza pause. She stared at the mushroom, waiting for some kind of punch line, but nothing came. "You mean it?" she croaked; Elizabeth nodded. "And no one came to help?"

"Oh, no. Not at all. Knight Artorias came to push back the Abyss. Then followed Hawkeye Gough and the Lord's Blade, Ciaran, to combat the mighty dragon who made his nest nearby. Three of Lord Gwyn's four most trusted knights, tis quite an honour. And yet," she murmured wistfully, turning to stare at where Erza suspected the nearest town to be, "it hath been days. I wonder. Even such a hero possesses but a murmur of dark. Wouldst this be enough to be felled by fel might?"

One of these names niggled at the back of Erza's mind. She knew it, but from where?

Then it hit her, conversations she had with Priscilla when the kind giantess was not even a member of the guild. But it had been so long, Erza barely remembered any of it. Only the name of a place remained. "So Anor Londo is near?"

"Indeed. The city of gods rests atop yonder hill." Elizabeth turned the other direction, pointing her cap at a veritable mountain. This also highlighted the strange geography for the first time. "How peculiar that thou dost not know this. Have thou arrived from beyond Lordran's borders, perchance?"

Erza silently turned around to study her surroundings again. She had a decent grasp of Fiore, but none of the landmarks were here. This was the realm Priscilla once lived in.

Then she remembered what they learned during the Fantasia Tournament and all thought came to a screeching halt. Erza was not just in another country, she somehow went to an entirely different world. Her body swayed, what strength she had leaving her. She barely managed not to fall to her knees.

"Art thou alright?"

The honest concern Elizabeth asked that question with gave Erza a chance to focus. She took a deep breath and forced her body under control. "Y-Yeah," she coughed. "Just, far from home. I need to think for a bit."

"Very well. I shall tend thy fire, then. Come to think of it, traveler, thou should rest at yonder bonfire. Refill thy Estus flask. I know precious little of its properties, but perhaps a sip of Estus may soothe thy throat?"

When Erza stared at her incomprehendingly, Elizabeth motioned for the coiled blade in the ash pile. Erza kept staring at her, which gave the mushroom pause. "Art thou, perchance, not undead?"

"What?"

"Intriguing. Tis rare nowadays, to meet one not yet affected by the Darksign."

This word meant nothing to Erza; yet the longer they spoke of it, the more barely remembered conversations she managed to dredge up. Elizabeth merely hummed to herself.

She settled at the bonfire regardless; despite being but cinders, it projected an intense warmth that settled all the way in Erza's battered body. Her muscles relaxed, minor cramps she barely noticed before unwinding. Her exhaustion was slowly washed away. Contrary to her intention however, she simply stared at the embers without a single thought until Elizabeth called her back. She extinguished the fire and stared longingly at her pot, still too hot to be drunk from.

With a chance to rest, at least Erza's mental faculties returned somewhat. "Shouldn't we help these knights? There has to be something we can do, right?"

"Worry not, they art most capable individuals." Elizabeth inclined her head, though even the lack of a face did not hide her doubt. Once she became aware of Erza's arched brow, she sighed. "Although several days passed since their arrival yet all remains as it were. I fear for my princess. And yet, if even Knight Artorias was found wanting, what chance stand we, a stranger to these lands and an elderly mushroom?"

The water was still a mite warm, but at this point Erza did not care. She tilted the pot and drank greedily until it was only two thirds filled and her blouse damp. Then she allowed herself a contended sigh, before remembering the situation.

"Ah, apologies."

Elizabeth merely chuckled, but the embarassment did not fade easily. Erza refilled her waterskins next, forcing her thoughts back to the question. "But we should be fine. I killed my fair share of beasts in my world. If this Artorias needs help to see this through, he will get it."

Despite saying so, her aching body told a different story. "Though having fought for hours before waking up here didn't leave me in good condition. Another guild, elite wizards, and then a dragon."

Elizabeth perked up, standing at attention. "Pardon, didst thou truly face a dragon? Not a mere drake or wyvern, but a dragon?"

"Yes. Although we did not actually win."

The mushroom pondered this before shrugging. A few spores fell off her red cap. "Yet thou still live, a feat which few can boast of. Why, the dragon that plagued Oolacile of late seems to have vanished; for days now I have not heard the sound of his wingsbeats, or his roars of challenge. Yet neither a dying scream, nor the sound of grand battle. But alas."

Erza was about to inquire what her new acquaintance pondered when several white mushrooms grew from the ground to her feet. She quickly stepped back so as to not crush them, prompting another chuckle. "Take these and let them rejuvenate thee, Dame."

"Dame?"

"For what else couldst thou be?"

"Fair enough." Erza kneeled to poke the sudden outgrowth. It felt squishy like any mushroom she ever encountered. Glancing back up at the expectant Elizabeth, she carefully plucked all four and wiped them clean. After hesitating a little longer, she stuck one in her mouth. It felt incredibly weird to do this in front of a sapient mushroom. The gooey texture and earthy taste did not help, rather reminding her of the fact she never liked fungi to begin with. A few quick chews were all Erza managed before forcing herself to swallow.

Once its slimy trail reached her belly, warmth blossomed through Erza's body. Energy flooded her system like an electric shock. Where the bonfire was soothing, this wiped away all the minor ailments and aches. Erza stood thunderstruck as her body recovered from hours of combat, unable to feel any magic at work. Elizabeth chuckled once again when the redhead gobbled up the second mushroom. "A humble gift, to one willing to lend aid without request or recompense."

Erza inclined her head, managing a smile. "Thank you. These were just what I needed." She pocketed the final two mushrooms for later; they could not go into the item box before being dried, as they were organic. "I will be off now. Thank you, really."

"Tis nothing. Prithee be careful. Although, before thou leaveth, what is thy name?"

The knightess stopped, realising that she never gave it. "Erza Scarlet. I will be back later."

"Fare thee well, Dame Erza."

Elizabeth was soon alone again, chuckling to herself about the odd visitor. At the same time, her demeanor did inspire confidence. Unwavering despite injury and kind at heart.

Meanwhile, Erza herself focussed what Ethernano she recovered to switch outfits. Her beloved breasplate took form, skirt replaced with a plated variant. Metal greaves and bracers followed, as well as a straight longsword. She did not know what lay ahead, so a basic setup seemed best; Erza had to ration her Requip for now, what with only having limited Ethernano.

What she found was... less intimidating than imagined. After crossing a solid stone bridge, she was accosted by living scarecrows. They came at her with hedge trimmers and spears, easily dispatched. She may be low on magic, but her body and skills were honed. Even the larger stone guardians with their hammers proved little issue; Erza merely brought out a hammer of her own so as to not break her blade.

What she saw along the way did not inspire confidence, though. Once lush woods were slowly losing their luster; black veins ran through the ground, faintly pulsing. Ethernano was a bit more plentiful near them, but Erza did not linger. She quickly found a steep cliff and reoriented, then almost tripped into a hole in the ground. The chasm beneath was empty and bereft of light, its mere sight making her shudder. An abyssal maw, waiting for hapless prey to gobble up.

She was glad to leave this behind. Less than an hour after parting with Elizabeth, a giant colosseum came in sight. It towered over the woods, dilapidated though it was. Erza absently bisected a scarecrow that tumbled down the hill she leapt from, eyes on the structure. It elicited a sense of foreboding; for what, she did not know.

Erza allowed herself to stop and breathe for a second. Her sweaty undershirt clung to her skin thanks to the humid woodland and exertion. But now there was enough Ethernano within her to face whatever lay ahead. She thought back to her friends, wherever they may be now. There was nothing she could do for them at the moment, so Erza did what she always had: she forged onward. Once she saw how things shook out, she could decide how to proceed.

Holding her blade at rest, she approached the city of Oolacile. Nothing accosted her on this final stretch and soon she passed through the imposing stone arch. Fresh Ethernano wafted around her, but thin, black veins also ran through the walls. The rot spread outward from somewhere ahead. Her metal boots clacked on the stone floor, the noise her only companion. Erza was alert for whatever may come.

Her first glimpse of the colosseum's interior also taught her what became of the townsfolk: a caricature of a human shambled around the only exit, almost exactly opposite to her entry point. What few scraps he wore did not hide his sex; else she would not have known. His head bloated into a nearly shapeless, dark cocoon that gleamed with a dozen red eyes. Unnaturally elongated arms dragged across the ground, skin discoloured into a sickly gray.

Once Erza fought down her revulsion and made to move again, the thing perked up. Its head turned her way with the echo of her first step. Clawed hands rose, a piercing screech began in its throat... and it was rent asunder by a mighty greatsword. The blade came down with such force that spider cracks spread out along the ground. Black blood flew, thankfully too far away to sully her.

Erza went on guard immediately, sizing up the newcomer. Her gut told her to run at the sight of a broken knight. Garbed in grey armour with some torn, blue cloth attached around the shoulders. His left arm hung limp, clearly broken. The right held his greatsword with little issue. Black sludge oozed from countless wounds across his entire body, breaking apart links in the armour. She could not see his face in the shadows of his helmet, but there was no need. He clearly sized her up in turn.

"Are you Artorias?"

She received no response except a wail of mindless anger and pain. The knight crouched on all fours and Erza braced herself. Then he leapt twenty metres high. Erza's gaze followed, but the sun blinded her; she leapt aside instinctually to blink away the spots. A loud crash told her of the impact, chips of stone clinking against her chest.

She marshalled her reserves and enhanced herself, just in time to block Artorias' brutal swing with her own blade. The desecrated steel tore a chunk out of her sword. No more than scratches it received in a hundred battles, yet before him it was but a toy. Erza left his reach and focussed; the arrival of a magic circle gave Artorias pause, just long enough to draw out a new sword. This time she charged, slashing straight across his chest and sending him flying. A trail of black blood followed.

The warrior realigned in mid-air, landing on his feet and stampeding back at her. Erza dodged, only to find herself harried around the arena. Artorias was relentless, swinging with the force of a raging bull and the speed of a wasp. He gave her no quarter, immortal skill shining where his mind was long lost in darkness. All Erza could do was deflect his assault, losing four more blades before he relented.

Both of them drew back to recover. Erza expressed a polearm next to take the advantage in reach. Then her senses tingled; Ethernano coalesced within Artorias, an aura of darkness shrouding him. Her eyes widened and she dashed forward to stop whatever this was.

Just as the tip of her lance pierced a gap in his armour, he screamed. The physical force of it stopped her assault and threw her back; Erza lost her grip on the weapon. She caught her fall on her hands and pushed off to right herself. Her own lance whistled by just below her head. She drew for another, only to come face to helmet with Artorias halfway through her descent.

He swung with enough force to bisect any lesser being. Even Erza, who stood head and shoulders above most, could not deflect the blow. She punched his wrist and pulled on her discarded lance, levitating it against her foot to push off of. But it was too little, too late. The butcher's blade missed her torso thanks to her efforts, only to come down on her right shoulder instead. What paltry magical defenses she could throw up were shattered, her reinforced body cleaved in two.

Erza screamed as pain overtook her. Crimson drowned out black on the floor, two thirds of an arm slapping down in a shower of lifeblood. Erza fought through the shock and stepped back again. The follow-up almost grazed her nose, throwing up enough wind to make her hair flutter. She felt faint, heart thumping heavily in her chest. Panicked magic circles began to apply pressure on her wound, closing it up as best she could. Artorias cared naught for her distress, coming at her relentlessly. She was unarmed, quite literally this time.

Erza would die here. She hated the realisation and yet it became ever more true. She was losing blood, her magic reserves were low, and her opponent's mindless husk outclassed her severely.

Except she refused. Force of will fought back the darkness lapping at her mind. Erza clenched her teeth, growling at Artorias. She wound under a swing and headbutted him, magically pulling on her forgotten lance again; it ran him through from behind just as he staggered back, but went ignored. She did not mind, this gave her all the time she needed.

The shining scarlet constantly in her vision reminded Erza of one other tool at her disposal. She grasped for it, the unmarred steel materialising in her remaining hand. A dagger, oh so harmless in comparison to its larger cousin in Artorias' hand. Yet it pulsed with purpose, anticipation almost, to spill the blood of Gwyn's knight.

When next he came at her, Erza focussed on dodging. She went deep into his reach to land a hit of her own, then took a knee to the face for her trouble. But a thin, black line was drawn across his thigh before she went flying, nose broken.

Erza realigned and landed on her feet, only to be chased around the room again. This time however, she had a plan. Dozens of stings she delivered to her enemy, every time he moved past or wound up. Rivulets of black began to pour down his body from every tiny wound. Where they just coagulated before, this time they remained oozing. Artorias took no notice of the ever larger trail he left, but Erza did. He grew slower, blood loss soon affecting him more than her.

Whatever boost he applied earlier wore off then. He barely managed to roll backward, coating himself in his and her blood. Erza followed up immediately, feeling the twinge of Ethernano before seeing the dark aura again. Dagger alight, she shouted back at him and ran him through from the front. This time she hit the heart.

The world held its breath. Both combatants stood still, half leaning on each other. Artorias' body began to grow limp, a veritable river of black flowing down his chest and back. His blade dropped with a loud crack on impact with the ground. But his hand moved, twitching fingers closing around her torn shoulder. Erza whimpered from the pain and tried to dislodge herself, but she lacked the strength.

Then a voice reached her ear. Hoarse, weak, and broken, but a voice nonetheless. Artorias fought for words, feebly clawing at her even as she supported most of his weight. "My, Sif. Sif. Below, in the dark. Please!"

Erza was half delirious from pain and blood loss. Her body battered and broken, held up by force of will alone. She understood his plea regardless. Letting go of the dagger, she reached up to cup his armoured cheek.

"Don't worry. I will save him."

"...thank you."

He fell limp then, slowly sliding off her side. It felt as if his drop to the ground shook the world. Everything went sideways and Erza fell next to him, vision going black.
 
6.4 The Heart of Magic
When Erza woke from dreamless slumber, it was still bright.

Her arm itched all over. She absently reached out to scratch it, but only felt empty air and solid stone. It took another moment to remember what happened. She was not in pain, though. And put to rest on something soft; a bundle of cloth, of a sort.

Erza's entire body was sore. She barely managed to sit up, groaning faintly to herself. Then she found her breastplate, greaves, boots, and bracers all arrayed neatly by her side. A small, bloodsoaked bundle lay next to them; she did not need to check to know what was inside.

"Thou art a hardy woman," an unfamiliar voice spoke. Rich, cultured, and clearly female. Erza's head turned to find the speaker; she kneeled next to the fallen knight nearby. She, too, was dressed in elaborate black armour. Unlike him, a full suit of navy blue obscured the metal in most places. Where it was visible, white lines ran across in reminiscence of a spiderweb. A helmet covered her entire head, white mask hiding even the face. Strands of blonde hair fell out to its sides, as well as in a braid out the helmet's back. Even without seeing her eyes, Erza knew they were focussed on her.

"My heartfelt thanks, stranger. For freeing poor Artorias of the Abyss."

"...who are you?"

It was the only question she could think to ask. The woman studied her a moment longer, then rose in a single, fluid motion. She strode toward Erza with the grace of a cat, Priscilla's dagger held in a backhand grip. "I am known as Ciaran, Lord's Blade and knight of Lord Gwyn." She presented the weapon to Erza, who accepted it back with a nod. "And I stood witness to thine ordeal. Few could have bested Artorias, even as he was."

Erza studied her weapon momentarily. An errant thought told her that somehow, her friend still protected her from beyond this world. She focussed her Ethernano and stored the dagger back into her item box. Ciaran clearly saw but did not comment. Erza rubbed her aching forehead, trying to dispell the feeling of cotton behind her skull.

"Why didn't you help?" she asked after a lengthy pause. Ciaran stared at her without answer, then slowly glanced back to the fallen knight. Her fingers twitched ever so slightly, shoulders slumping almost imperceptibly. The silence lingered and through it, Erza understood. Her own pain of losing Jellal oozed back from where she banished it to the back of her mind. Time soothed the wound, but it did not hurt any less.

"You loved him."

"Aye."

"I'm sorry."

"Do not be. He would have wished for an end rather than to become a puppet. Only the abomination is at fault."

The sheer vitriol she hissed the final sentence with made Erza wary of pursuing the subject. She slowly worked her way to her feet, stumbling sideways. Ciaran was by her side in a heartbeat, steadying her. "Easy. The body takes time to adjust for loss of limb. Thou were quite fortunate to carry such potent restoratives. The mushrooms," she elaborated under Erza's questioning look. A quick pat of her pocket made the redhead realise the two she saved were indeed gone. "Alas, they can not regrow entire limbs. Thy blood is replenished, however. Thy skin and flesh mended. My apologies as well, it was the best I could do."

Erza nodded slowly. She took a deep breath and reached over with her remaining hand; the bandage came off easily, seemingly clean. Underneath it was... her shoulder, followed by about a third of her upper arm. Pale skin grew over the stump, as if there had never been any more to it. She stared for a long time, panting softly.

Then she remembered his final request and forced back the issue for later. Erza was not done yet. "He said something about a Sif. Do you know who that is?"

"Sif yet lives?" Ciaran perked up at once, then glanced back to Artorias. "...I see. So this is how he came to lose his shield. Sif is his faithful companion, last of the great grey wolves who ruled the forests of Lordran. She is still but a pup, nurtured ever since he rescued her from the beast that slew her pack. But if she waits beneath, I am afraid reaching her is quite impossible. The Abyss rules yonder and if it grasps at thee, well." She motioned for her corrupted beloved. Erza inclined her head in understanding.

Then she felt a soft breeze hit her face. It carried fresh Ethernano, reminding Erza that she was not like them. Conviction began to grow within her chest, drowning out the myriad of minor aches. She took a deep breath, let the magic fill her, and firmed up. "Which way is fastest to the Abyss?"

"Didst thou not listen?"

"It was his final request. I have to at least try."

Ciaran stood dumbfounded, staring at Erza; at least she was used to this particular reaction. It almost allowed to imagine the expression under that helmet. When she remained firm, the other knightess silently pointed toward the exit leading into town. "The only route inside leads through Oolacile. Much of the city fell since, making it a difficult path to traverse. Allow me to escort thee, at least for as long as I am able. Thou need time to reestablish thy center of balance."

"Good point. Thank you."

"Allow me just a few minutes to say goodbye."

"Of course."

She left Ciaran to kneel at Artorias' side once more. While the other woman was busy, Erza slowly prowled around the colosseum to test her balance. She could move well enough, but any fast motions required concious corrections. It was not ideal for one who expected battle, but she would have to make do. More Ethernano breezed in as well, refilling her reserves. Magic could at least compensate for weakness of the flesh.

She slowly gathered her belongings, depositing them back into her item box. Next Erza produced a roll of gauze to bind her arm with; she could not risk the stump flobbing around in the middle of a fight.

When she was done, a soft rustle caught her attention. Ciaran rose once more, drawing two curved blades from their sheathes. One a dark grey, the other bright orange. She left behind a fallen knight with his hands folded on his chest, joining Erza at the archway.

The first thing she realised upon entering Oolacile proper was that Ciaran meant 'fell' quite literally. Great clefts opened along the roads and plazas, having swallowed most buildings; peering down one revealed only an endless chasm. It was unnatural to the point Erza shuddered once more. Then she wondered how the rest of the city remained up here, only to notice a distant building crumble as it fell into the abyss.

"The process grows ever faster," Ciaran murmured. She bounced on the balls of her feet, striding several steps ahead. Another of the mutated villagers came her way, only to be greeted by a flash; the gleaming blade drew all attention, only for the dark one to pierce their side. "We must make haste," the knightess continued as if nothing happened, ignoring the damaged enemy. Erza was about to ask when they crumpled with a wail.

Hurrying after her unconcerned ally, she could not help but ask: "Can't they be saved?"

"I think not. If the Abyss could corrupt even one as formidable as Artorias, what chance dost these peasants stand? They art but puppets, now." Ciaran did not sound happy, but Erza caught her drift.

"Still, poison?"

"Tis effective, no?"

"Fair enough."

The other woman led her down the crumbling main road, now little more than a small path. Any enemies that approached were dispatched with brutal efficiency, the rest ignored. Erza detected no wasted motion, no hesitation, no openings even. Ciaran danced among them like a goddess of death. Her skill and grace put any lesser woman to shame, even as allies.

After a quarter hour or so of wandering, Erza began to feel more confident again. Her balance slowly evened out and ever more Ethernano surrounded them. More than enough to project weapons and thrust them forward with levitation. The first time she saw a spear rocket by like a javelin, Ciaran paused to glance back at her. "Such technique would have come in handy earlier," she mused, the question implied. Once Erza explained that she lacked Ethernano before to cast magic with, the other woman inclined her head. "I see."

Soon after that point, Erza became impatient. Ciaran certainly picked stable paths and rarely even stopped for enemies, but this was going too slow. Ever more deformed people were drawn to them; some even started throwing odd, black magic at them.

"Halt."

Ciaran stopped her walk immediately, allowing Erza to catch up. The redhead glanced at the nearest edge and the chasm beneath. "This is too slow," she explained. "The way Artorias spoke, Sif needs help now. I'll go the direct way."

"Thy magic grants flight, then?" Ciaran mocked. In turn Erza snorted and stepped onto a larger boulder, which she then levitated. The other woman's posture lost its hint of annoyance immediately.

"No, it doesn't work on living beings. But why not make something else float while I stand on it?" After bragging for a moment, she focussed back on the depths. "I do not know how long it will take or where to find Sif. Please keep the path back clear."

"Can do. Best of luck, Dame Erza."

"To you as well, Dame Ciaran."

They exchanged grave nods, then Erza dove. The darkness swallowed her whole, like the maw of a waiting beast. Her descent lasted a full minute before she found ground; solid if soft soil, completely soaked with abyssal sludge. Yet there was light, if only ambient; nothing seemed to reach from the open sky above, but Erza could still see.

What was more, the Ethernano down here was abundant. It shocked her system once she registered just how much permeated the air. She shook herself like a wet dog and drew out a dozen blades; they arrayed themselves in two wings of six, but her reserves of magic refilled as fast as she used them up. Freshly energised, Erza dashed forward to begin her search.

Her enthusiasm did not last long, however. Not only was it dark, but the absence of any sound bar the slapping of her boots against the soil soon took its toll. An eerie silence kept its hold of the entire abyss. There was no one here, except... spirits. Sprites, perhaps. Black shapes with vaguely humanoid outlines in white, turning her way the moment she drew near. They did not speak, made no noise, simply ventured closer. Erza shouted to stop, to no response but more sprites noticing her. She retreated and they followed.

When she made her floating swords snap forward to impale them, they barely reacted. What may be a head turned down to study the sudden hole in their ethereal chests. Anything but the sprites twice Erza's size immediately dispersed; she felt a little sick when the tiny ones arrived, reminding her far too much of children. Yet she marshalled her will and killed them. They were but dust in the wind, a black mist yet to disperse.

Soon enough she was charging across the area. The Abyss seemed endless, but Erza came upon solid walls leading upward. How far she went, she did not know. Erza could not see any further than a few dozen metres at any given time. The silence began to gnaw on her nerves. Seeking a wolf in the dark, haunted by dark sprites, she began to grow increasingly desperate as time passed. Her body slowly demanded rest after how long she spent active. She needed to sleep and recuperate. Yet at the same time she was brimming with Ethernano. The dichotomy wore at her also. She had little else to occupy her time, unwilling to start thinking. Lest the absence of her arm reassert itself.

A flicker of silver in the corner of her eyes made Erza's head snap around. Then she stopped, almost stumbling as she tried to understand what she saw. Was that a giant cat, just lounging on one of the terraces?

Erza rubbed her eyes, but it was still there. After dispatching another two sprites, she approached slowly.

"Hello?"

Halfway there, the feline dispersed with an ethereal meow. Only to reappear down the ledge amidst an underground river, barely at the edge of her vision. Erza stared at it and it stared back.

When she leapt down, it vanished and reappeared again. This time she was sure to have spotted a grin on its wide lips. Erza scowled, but followed the apparition anyway. She had no other clues and no time to keep running around aimlessly. An almost mocking meow underlined her thoughts as she pursued. The splattering of water under her steps drew more sprites, but they died as easily as the rest. If these things could die, that was. She did not know and right now she did not care.

Whatever guided her, it seemed to know exactly where to go. Erza traversed the shallow river and jogged along a barren stone wall until a single spark of light caught her attention. It flickered fitfully, barely reaching out a small crack in the wall. She stared at it momentarily; finding this from a distance was basically impossible. She could have searched for days without ever noticing.

Despite her previous annoyance and the apparition's absence, she threw a smile toward the open chasm.

"Thanks, cat."

Perhaps it was just her imagination, but she thought she heard a faint growl in response. The closest to a purr a large feline could get.

Sliding into the crack, it quickly widened into a cave. Sprites populated the area, completely ignoring her; a small crowd of them, pushing at each other. Their would-be-heads were turned to something behind a corner. Another flash followed and Erza quickly skewered the lot of them.

The light grew brighter once she rounded that same corner. But there were also more sprites, an entire room chock full of them. Each time one got too close to the gleaming something in the center, a flash of light pushed it back. Erza could not even tell their target with how dense the writhing cluster around it was. Then again, there was only one being beside her this far down.

Just to make certain, she doubled her active weaponry to two dozen. The drain on her magic became noticeable for the first time, if not particularly strenuous. She lacked the mental capacity to control them individually beyond simple motions. Fortunately, simple motions were all she needed. Spears and lances shot forward, impaling a dozen sprites each as they traversed the room. Swords flashed around the gleaming field, hacking up what she could not target with the polearms to avoid friendly fire.

The room was empty within a minute, excepting her and the wolf. The most beautiful wolf she had ever seen, her coat of pearly fur standing out even amidst the darkness. She stood when Erza arrived, tail wagging, only to slump when she registered who had not come. A soft whine sounded.

When she approached, Sif drew a shortsword from its sheath at her flank. Growling threateningly, she may have frightened a lesser woman. Standing as tall as the fully grown wolves Erza knew, even she found herself impressed. But she was not here to fight and stopped right in front of the barrier. It sprung from the edges of a dark blue greatshield.

"It's okay, Sif." The wolf's tension lessened upon hearing her name. Erza smiled gently. "Artorias asked me to bring you out of here. He can't come for you."

Another soft whine sounded and the sword dropped from her muzzle. Sif slumped further. With no more signs of aggression or fear, Erza slowly reached out; Sif allowed it. The moment her hand passed through the barrier, it vanished.

Her greave was stored so she could luxuriate in the fluffy fur for just a few moments. The wolf accepted her petting. "That's a good girl," Erza cooed, then focussed. "Let's get you out of here. Come on, I need to move this shield."

Sif hesitantly let herself be coaxed off. She sheathed her sword while the unfamiliar human levitated Artorias' cracked shield. Then the wolf was ushered out of the hole she hid in, shadowing Erza's steps. Alert though she was, no more sprites approached. There were none left nearby.

Right outside, Erza set down the shield and beckoned Sif. "Stand on here with me. Come on, hurry. I don't know how long you can withstand this." Though clearly confused, her charge did as told and received another headpat. "Good girl. You should lie down, that makes it easier to keep your balance."

Sif did that as well, though the look in her eyes clearly conveyed how befuddled she was. Erza smiled and lifted them both on the shield. Years of practice helped keep her balance even while standing. Now Sif was plainly shocked, her surprised whimper trailing after them as Erza lifted them out of the chasm.

Their ascent was about as eventful as her descent, so she stored away all her weapons. They soon emerged from a steadily growing hole in the forest outside of Oolacile; Erza rose high to orient herself. The colosseum was easy to spot, thankfully. Although she realised that ever greater parts of the area fell. The process was gradual, but the forest lost about a third of its size compared to when she arrived.

Erza sped up in response, carefully balancing and angling the shield so she did not throw Sif off. Wolves were not meant to fly after all.

She never saw such a happy canine than when their improvised ride settled down. Sif leapt off, rolling around on the ground. It was only a moment before she stilled and turned her head; seeing that Erza saw the whole thing, she quickly righted herself and shook dirt out of her fur. The redhead chuckled, which made Sif turn up her snout.

Then she sniffed and her head snapped toward the archway in front of them. Before Erza knew it, the wolf howled and tore off inside. She followed belatedly, only to find her standing over the remains of her friend. Artorias lay peacefully, undisturbed by the monsters. Sif nudged him, tried to get her snout under folded hands for pets. When nothing happened, she whimpered and howled out in anguish. It was pure grief, echoing across all of Oolacile. Then Sif slumped down fully, staring at Artorias.

Erza walked over slowly, crouching next to the despondent wolf. "I'm sorry," she murmured. "He was too far gone. This was all I could do for him."

A soft whine followed, but nothing else. Moments later, Ciaran arrived through the other archway. She joined them somberly.

"Thou were successful," she mused, settling on Sif's other side. "Twice now thou hast gone above and beyond what could be expected of thee." Sif accepted a gloved hand onto his head, caressing gently. Ciaran sighed. "Thou persevered where we failed. The dragon Gough and I came for hath escaped and Artorias hath fallen. The Abyss spreads ever further. Tis only a matter of time till Oolacile is swallowed whole. Hah. What fine knights we art."

Her monologue was interrupted by rustling cloth and clacking steel. Erza stood, expression firm. Once she saw the other two looking at her, she smiled. "Isn't that what friends are about? If you can not do it yourself, you ask someone else for help. That is what makes the bonds between people so special. There is no limit, no need to go it alone." She herself took far too long to learn that lesson. "I can survive down there, so I will go and end this."

"Madness! Traversing the Abyss is one matter, but facing its heart?" Ciaran rose to block Erza's path. "Thou can not persevere alone. Even if it spells my doom, allow me to join thine assault."

Sif rose as well, a determined bark declaring her intentions. Erza met both of them with narrow eyes.

"The last time I tried to finish the job at the expense of my life, a good friend came and beat the stupid out of me. The only reason I am not doing so with you now is that we do not have time." Both stiffened, likely out of surprise. Erza shook her head, then motioned back to Artorias. "Leave this to me and take the time to grieve his passing properly."

She began to walk then. Ciaran did not step in her way again. The other woman stood stock still. Only the sound of her voice gave Erza pause for a moment: "I hold thee to that. Should thou not return, I shall personally hunt thee through thy next life."

Neither turned to look at the other. Erza gave no response either, though the words etched a faint smile onto her face. She left the colosseum silently, once again using a boulder to descend. Only this time she was not seeking Sif, but the root of this infestation. Instead of stopping upon reaching the chasm, Erza descended further. Every pit she found, she leapt into; somewhere at the bottom of it, she reasoned, she would find Primeval Man.

After ending in several dead ends however, she realised this would take a while if she just blindly leapt. Erza stopped to take out a few sprites that followed her, breathing in the abundant Ethernano.

It was in this moment that the dots connected: there was ever more of the magical particle the closer one was to the Abyss. A leyline must lie somewhere around these parts, spewing forth its contents. The strongest monsters always had their nest as close to leylines as they could. Meaning, if her logic held, she would find her target where the Ethernano was most dense.

After ascertaining that no enemies were nearby, she closed her eyes to focus. Without any sound but her own roaring pulse and beating heart, without any input from her eyes but darkness, the only sense she needed was her sense for magic. It took a mere minute until she had a direction and tore off toward it. Erza leapt over pits along the way now, enhancing the strength in her legs as far as she could. The ground crumbled when she pushed off, but those soft noises and fragments were quickly left behind and forgotten.

Through the darkness Erza raced, right toward its heart. Less and less sprites impeded her, even the phantom beings afraid of what lay near. Her expression firmed up as weapons expressed themselves. A dozen spears, six swords, four axes, and two clubs. Then one more appeared, wielded in her hand. She could not afford niceties or restraint. Priscilla's dagger seemed to gleam even in this eternal night, almost humming at the idea of slaying a primal being.

Just as she crashed into a ledge, dozens of glowing red eyes appeared ahead; they stared straight at her. Erza faltered, instinctual dread locking up her body. Whatever it was, it terrified the animal part of her self. Right there by the leyline's core, bathed in it.

She moved past the fear and kept going, right at the beast. Right at him. Manus, Father of the Abyss. Erza knew his name, it rode on his gaze and every fibre of his being. Blood trickled out her ears as her brain tried to comprehend the silhouette that slowly appeared from the darkness, easily Priscilla's size and twice as massive. Giant antlers crowned his malformed head, exposed ribs as armour for a body covered in pitch-black fur. She understood now why everyone aboveground had gone insane; humble beings like humans were not meant to comprehend the enormity of Manus.

But Erza Scarlet refused to be cowed. She pushed past the migraine his mere sight induced. Her magical grip on two blades flaked and they were lost in another pit, but she kept rushing forward. One last jump brought her right on collision course with Manus, who observed her cautiously. A moment later he screamed in pain as a dozen ballistic spears hammered into his chest and abdomen. Five failed to slip between the ivory of his outer ribcage and plinked off, but the rest hammered deep into him. She let go and brought out another seven to replace them.

Then Manus blurred and something large hit Erza from the right. She immediately went off-course, slamming into a wall and driving a metres-deep crater into it. Coming to rest, she stared out of the hole in a daze. A flood of liquid darkness came rolling at it.

A second passed, then two. Then clarity returned and Erza expressed Artorias' shield to plug the hole; darkness hit it like a physical force, pushing Erza all the way back to the wall she just kissed before dissipating. Peeking out, she found the weapons she held with magic were strewn around, bent and warped. Only the dagger remained in her hand.

Unfortunately for Manus, Erza had reserves.

Leaping outside, she hit the ground running right toward the looming monster. Another two dozen armaments flashed into existence in a matter of seconds, her reserves already refilling. She could enhance her body, keep up the flow of flashing steel, and hold her protective shell without issue; adrenaline coursed through her veins, heart racing. She loosed another volley of spears, but Manus leapt over it. At first she thought he would be an easy target at this distance, but then she saw his arm. One was short and held a crooked staff of sorts, but the other came down on her. She leapt sideways and was sent into a roll by the shockwave of impact. Clumps of dirt rained down while the ape's monstrous paw retracted on a limb far too long.

Manus roared challenge, only for another bundle of spears to hit him in the back. Erza then sent her swords forward to keep him at range and occupied. Yet without great velocity, they barely scratched his thick hide and went ignored. Manus rampaged toward her, viciously swinging that paw in wide arcs. Telegraphed though it may be, there was such speed and force behind it that Erza had to scramble to evade. She made another two holes in the walls before the monster's tantrum ended.

The next time she climbed out, he retreated and seemed to be channeling. Ethernano welled up above him, turning into a cloud of darkness that somehow stood out even amongst the black abyss. Erza immediately loosed everything into his still form to no reaction. Manus growled lowly, glaring at her with enough force to kill lesser men.

When darkness began to rain down, she fled back into the wall she was smashed into before. Malevolent rain slowly whittled away at it, but she was fine. At least until the giant hand grabbed into the hole. With no way to dodge, Erza took the only way she had and stabbed with all her strength. A dark line opened along his thumb, oozing black. Then five fingers closed around her and she barely managed to hold onto her dagger.

Erza was pulled out and to the front of Manus' face. He screamed at her with the force of a miniature storm, squeezing Erza with all his might. Despite her considerable strength, she quickly felt her body give under his monstrous power. Her bones would break in a handful of seconds, then her shell, and then the rest of her. Panic worked its way into her battle trance, heart skipping a beat at the realisation she was about to die.

She struggled for a moment, but was for once found lesser. She only had a single arm, Priscilla's dagger halfway sheathed in Manus' palm. At least he would bleed to death from it and the wounds she dealt. That, if nothing else, was consolation for Erza. Time seemed to slow as the end approached.

Then she remembered Natsu. Gray. Lucy. Juvia. Cana, Mirajane, Makarov, Laxus. Her friends. Her guild. Her family. And also, Ciaran. She all but promised she'd come back. She could not let them down. She would not let them down.

Shaking herself, Erza focussed on her magic. Manus glared down at her in vicious glee, waiting for her to pop like an overripe fruit. He failed to see the half dozen spears materialise. A mental push sent them flying. All were on-point.

The beast howled, letting go of Erza to scratch at his face; six of his many eyes were now blinded. She landed painfully on her hip and scrambled to take distance. Her armour was cracked and broken, covered in speckles of red and black blood. Every fibre of her body ached horribly, having barely escaped its gruesome fate.

Meanwhile, Manus' anger overrode the pain. He bellowed another challenge at her and began to focus a massive amount of Ethernano. Another two dozen spears slammed into his body, piercing the tough hide. Yet even as a living pincushion, he simply kept channeling. Erza felt the magic coalesce and saw it turn into silvery streamers. While she materialised dark-resistent armour and Artorias' shield however, they flowed into him. Her myriad of weapons slowly shook and pushed themselves out, torn flesh regrowing within seconds.

Erza whispered a curse and dashed forward. The battle just became a race against time. More weapons appeared behind her, the stock of spears just about empty. She picked up more along the way; no finesse was needed, just numbers. Three dozen, four, five, six arrayed behind her on the approach. Manus barely even noticed, too puzzled by the persistent wound on his massive paw. Globs of black constantly dripped.

His head snapped up when the sound of rapid footsteps registered, swinging his staff. Erza was too fast, though. She landed on the weapon mid-swing, using it as a springboard. A hail of steel went down on his barely mended body beneath. The force of impact and renewed pain stunned even a titan like him, giving her the split-second she needed to drive her dagger through his forehead with all her might. The blade slid through bone, skin, and flesh like paper.

Time seemed to stop. Manus stood stock still, Erza hanging off of him. He slowly began to shudder and the darkness around her shivered with him. From this close, Erza could see tiny pinpricks within each eye; all those pupils were pointing right at her, quivering.

Then he screamed, shattering the Abyss's unending silence. Erza almost went horizontal from the force, barely holding onto her dagger's hilt. Foreign emotions assaulted her, the primal want for something, the pain of losing it, and unending despair.

Once it ended, Manus began to dissolve. His body collapsed into miasma that dissipated, though Erza faintly felt several lumps of Ethernano flittering away. She had no time to focus on them though, seeing how something remained. Right in front of her floated a woman, pale as death and garbed in fine silks. She began to fall as time resumed, and so did Erza. Only quick thinking and magic saved the lady from a split head on impact with the ground.

Heart beating heavily, Erza stared down at the softly sobbing woman. Holding her in one arm felt awkward, but the stranger did not care in the slightest. She curled up against Erza, crying into her heaving chest.

She tried to speak, but her voice was just about gone. Even after wetting her throat, Erza could do no more than croak: "Are you, ugh, Dusk?"

No response, just more crying. It suited her just fine in this moment; she was exhausted and every part of her body hurt. Erza absently gathered as many of her weapons as she could spot and put them back in storage. The Abyss felt less oppressive now, though it still persisted even after Manus' death. She did not really think about why the leyline core she felt earlier was now gone.

Angling a telekinetically controlled lance, she brought who she assumed to be Dusk of Oolacile into an improvised princess carry and found herself another boulder. Only force of will kept her going.

The ascent was a blur. She faintly remembered emerging in a sweeping arc, thankfully near the colosseum. Ciaran barely managed to turn before Erza landed, set down Dusk, and promptly collapsed for the second time that day.

Waking up in pain again was no better than the first time. Only now it was dawn. First specks of grey illuminated the sky, barely revealing overgrowth around her. A decimated canopy. Light danced beneath, the crackling of a fire she smelled more than saw. Erza did not want to move at all.

Then a bark sounded and something wet touched her cheek. She twitched, which led to a big nose snuffling her face. Sif then proceeded to lick her until she batted at her flank to stop. Satisfied, the wolf settled down by Erza's side; no one else reacted to the spectacle, though. Craning her neck to move as little as possible, she found herself in the sanctuary. Elizabeth was nowhere to be seen, Ciaran leaned against a wall fragment with her chin on her chest, and Dusk sat still while peering into the bonfire. She did not even blink.

But after everything, Erza decided this was a situation for future Erza to handle.

The next time she woke, it was noon. This time everyone noticed when Sif greeted her. Ciaran helped her up and fed her one of Elizabeth's mushrooms, which helped envigorate Erza. She was given water and food. Her allies coaxed Dusk as well, but the princess barely even reacted. Ciaran sighed.

"She hath been insensate ever since. Tis a miracle she retains but a semblance of sanity."

"She was inside Manus," Erza supplied. His name made Dusk flinch, head turning her way for the first time. "I can not imagine what that was like."

The princess stared down, slowly raising dainty fingers to soothe her temples. Both knights waited patiently until she spoke: "Manus recognised myself as His descendant and reached out. He meant no harm, not to me." Her voice remained a monotone, not even recognising she spoke to someone else. "Those fools, scholars they named themselves. They dug up His grave and took His beloved pendant."

Dusk fell silent, giving them all time to digest the news.

"So," Erza ventured slowly, well remembering the all-encompassing sense of loss Manus relayed in his final moments. "All of this, the devastation, everything, for a pendant?"

"Yes. His beloved pendant."

Dusk began rocking back and forth, hugging her knees. As annoyed as Erza may be, she realised venting it at her was not acceptable. She slowly rose on aching feet and hobbled to her side. The brunette accepted a sidehug, nestling against her in search of warmth. "It will be alright," she soothed.

"But will it?" Dusk sighed heavily, a wave of Ethernano on her breath. "I am tainted now, cursed with memory and might of Primeval Man. Oolacile is no more. Although the Abyss recedes as we speak, my people were extinguished. Husks and madmen are all that remains. Princess no more, tarnished, how will it be alright?"

"It will," Erza responded. She held not a single trace of doubt, cradling the erstwhile princess. "It always will, for as long as you live." She thought back to Makarov and her friends. To old man Rob who gave his life so she could live all those years ago. Even trapped in another world, their memory stayed true in her heart. She sought Ciaran's gaze as well, the next part was for everyone present. "If you feel lost now, like there is no path ahead, why not walk alongside mine for a bit? I am not of this world and need to find a way home."

All four women perked up in response. Sif sniffed her curiously, Elizabeth leaned closer from her crack in the wall, Ciaran crossed her arms, and Dusk stared. "Truly?" she queried, "thou wouldst allow a waste of skin by thy side?"

"You are not a waste in any regard."

"That explains it."

Ciaran's sudden comment cut off the budding cycle of denial and reassurance. Princess and knightess alike turned to the living goddess before them. "Thy demeanor and speech, tis like the scholar who came to Anor Londo a few years past. He stepped before Lord Gwyn with similar tale and was welcomed a friend of the realm. He did not linger, so I assume he made it home."

"Ah," Elizabeth made herself heard then. "A similar individual came to Oolacile some two years back. Would his name have been Precht, Dame Ciaran?"

"Indeed."

Erza knew that name. She heard it not too long ago, really. Hades introduced himself by it. She scowled, before pausing. "That does not add up." Seeing she had everyone's attention, she absently squeezed Dusk. "I know the man you speak of, but he was active in my world for many years. He can not have been here at the same time."

For some reason, that drew hearty chuckles from Ciaran and Elizabeth. Dusk was too busy scowling and muttering under her breath, at least until she saw Erza's confused expression. "The flow of time is convoluted," she explained. "Here in Lordran, centuries may pass in a heartbeat. Great heroes phase in and out of various timelines. Thou may suddenly find thyself flung into distant past. Why, before being abducted by Manus I saw glimpses of a decrepit basin guarded by a Hydra, where today Oolacile still remains."

"I see."

Yet another wondrous thing to wrap her head around. Erza decided to pick their brains about it later. For now she offered a faint smile. "That aside, will you help me? Perhaps you could show me Lordran along the way?"

A moment of uncomfortable silence followed. Ciaran stared at the ground while Sif pawed at a bare root. Elizabeth clearly waited for Dusk, who was the first to respond: "I, I would love to. Please allow me to join thy entourage. The least I can do to repay such kindness is to impart the soul arts as Oolacile practices them."

"I believe," the masked knightess spoke afterward, "that this is indeed the least I can do. Do not refute the point," she cut off Erza's retort, "had none ended the threat in its infancy, the Abyss would have swallowed all of Lordran and beyond." The younger knightess nodded, chastised. Ciaran ran a hand over her helmet and sighed. "In truth, I feel drained. My service to Lord Gwyn is at an end. But for thee, I shall make one final effort. However, Sif will not come."

Erza turned to the wolf, who did not meet her gaze. Ciaran responded in her stead: "We spoke earlier and I respect her wish. Before we leave this realm, we shall dig a grave for Artorias. His covenant, Sif wishes to guard from any who would seek it. It improved his resistance to the Abyss, making him able to tread where none of us ever could." Ciaran left a long pause, waiting for Erza to interject. She did not, so her new friend inclined her head. "And she will be in good company. I spoke to Gough as well. He, too, will remain."

"As will I."

Elizabeth's comment had Dusk shoot up, all but leaping out of Erza's embrace. She stuttered at the mushroom, trying to convey that she clearly wanted her godmother along. But she was shushed gently, a spore-laden cap pressed to her forehead. "None of that, my sweet. You are fully grown and mature, old enough to venture forth on thine own feet. I am but a mushroom. Too old for a great journey, at that. Rather, entrust what remains of Oolacile to me. I shall guard it alongside Lady Sif, preserving the memory of our wonderful realm."

Dusk stared at her for a long time, tears welling in her eyes.

Once it became clear neither would speak, Erza slowly worked her way to her aching feet. She squeezed the erstwhile princess's shoulder before addressing everyone: "We have time now, I guess. So let us begin with the grave and figure things out from there."
 
6.5 Ego Draconis
"It is not uncommon for active use of Ethernano to induce physical alterations; the scale ranges from changes in size and colouration to the growth of additional limbs. Particularly demanding disciplines are more likely to carry such changes, while learning magic during or before puberty increases their likelihood again."

-excerpt from "The Heart of Magic"

The new year had arrived in her absence, Wendy realised. She knew the season shifted but lost track of time; days blurred together as her need for sleep lessened. Now her bare feet crunched through fresh snow, a white blanket that covered Crocus.

Fiore's capital was as bustling as she remembered. There were more gazes thrown her way, but she did not let that bother her. Confidence, Fairy Tail's Levy once told her, attracted attention. Wendy was confident now, striding with her head held high. Silvery silk rustled around her petite form, an ankle-length dress Quelaan weaved for her protection. Not that it mattered, seeing how she grew almost impervious to heat and cold over the past months. This did not even factor in her shell of Ethernano. At the very least it made most people only glance at her.

She grumbled about the dense crowd impeding progress. Her misgivings were carefully kept from her expression, but annoyance bubbled in her gut ever since she arrived. To make matters worse, months away from civilisation made her forget the avalanche of scents that came with it. They assaulted her sensitive nose wherever she went, revolting and titillating in equal measure. Once it became unbearable on the main street, Wendy took a sharp turn and marched down a back alley.

This was not a major improvement, but it was better. She could bear the trace amounts of alcohol, ammonia, and musk welcoming her. Not that Wendy did not turn up her nose at the indignity, but she had better things to do than complain. When did that ever help resolve anything, anyway?

Her musings were interrupted by a group of three cutting off her path, two thirds down the alley. Wendy slowed to a halt, unimpressed. She heard stories of lowlifes ambushing people like this before, but those were rare occasions. No one wanted to risk accidentally trying to mug or assault a wizard after all. Except those three idiots.

"Thou art not the kind one generally expects to be accosted by," Wendy quipped. For before her stood not burly men, but three young women. Perhaps a few years older than Wendy, a lean and a busty one flanking their scowling leader. This one, she studied a bit more carefully; silver hair framed sharp, almost regal features. Her pants failed to hide wide hips and long legs while a black tank top with skull motif constrained a sizable bust. She wore a heavy, blue winter jacket, but left it open like some kind of gang leader. The intimidation factor was lessened by her cronies being bundled up completely.

"If thou would excuse me."

Without even waiting for what they might want, she made to step between them. The part of her that screamed to purge the infidels grew louder when the leader pushed her back with a mocking laugh. "Seriously, who talks like that? Think you're some kind of noble, huh?" Another push, and once again Wendy held back from punching her through the wall. "And what's this? You think you're a dragon, too?"

She winced when a calloused hand grabbed a fistful of blue hair. The older woman pulled it up, revealing a band of light blue scales. They covered her neck and ran up around her ears, stopping just short of her temples. Wendy slapped the offending hand and scowled back, seething. A growled "Yes" was the only response she could give without starting to berate them.

Apparently, they took her shaking for fear instead of the indignation it was. "Aww," the leader cooed mockingly, "look at her. The big, strong dragon is shaking in her boots. Oh wait, you aren't wearing any! Seriously, how dumb are you?"

In a more calm setting, Wendy may have explained the fact her shoes since fell apart from copious use. As it were, she needed all her mental faculties to hold back on the emerging violence. All three giggling about her did not help.

That was when a thus far neglected sense flared up. Belatedly, Wendy realised the leader also had a shell of active Ethernano. Meaning she was trained and capable of sensing Wendy was a wizard. Which in turn meant she came picking this fight despite the risks; that, or she failed to notice like Wendy herself had. It also meant she could work out some aggression without killing her. Perfect.

The shaking stopped. As did the giggling when Wendy lunged and punched the stranger's face. She went airborne, passing through between her shocked cronies and rolling along the alley. Wendy grinned at them sardonically. "Obviously less dumb than you," she finally answered the earlier question. A quick kick to both of their stomachs sent them down, curling up in pain.

The leader rose, but Wendy did not grant her time or courtesy to get her bearings. She was upon her in an instant, raining down blows and kicks. The woman tried to defend herself but was easily overwhelmed. Maybe it would have been a fight if she took Wendy seriously from the start. She made to grab for something at her belt, only for Wendy to tug that hand away and headbutt her. It barely even hurt, but her opponent's shell finally broke as she stumbled back. Grinning, Wendy punched her in the stomach for good measure. Then she delivered softer punches to the cronies, who since got back to their feet.

Cleaning her hands in some still fresh snow to get whatever filth was on them off, Wendy let go of the remaining anger. She delivered retribution and would not kill them. Or maim them. The part of her that was dragon really did not like being ridiculed.

She was about to leave the bruised trio behind when she realised they were all lying in the cold snow and would get sick. After a moment of indecision, she turned around and placed all three against a wall, shoulder to shoulder. There, that should at least keep them warm until they recovered.

Satisfied, Wendy left to take care of her actual business.

Later that same day, the seething demi-dragon stared out at Crocus from one of its hills. A public platform was erected for tourists and pilgrims to behold Fiore's majesty; at the moment it lay silent except for her. The cold winds that deterred most from a visit lay still and silent in adherence to their mistress.

Muttering quietly about 'stupid humans' in various flavours, Wendy attempted to rein in her raging temper. She was used to people being stupid for one reason or other, but this was a new low. In a way she could even understand it, but it aggravated her to no end.

And then, as if to test Kalameet's claim there was no such thing as karma, a familiar voice disrupted her solitude: "What's got your panties in a twist now?"

She elected not to answer and did not turn around. The sound of footsteps approaching on the wooden platform made her tense up, but no attack came. Rather that same, silver-haired woman from earlier leaned onto the railing next to her. The sight of her prominent black eye sent a satisfied tingle through Wendy.

"Do you truly want to get humiliated again?" she grumbled

"Nah, just curious this time. So you gonna tell me what's up?"

"..."

Wendy studied her for a long moment, temper settling in favour of polite curiousity. Just what drew this one back to her after the beating she received? And what did it matter? Airing her grievances did help in the past, but she had neither Quelaan nor Carla to talk to.

"People are stupid."

Her deadpan drew a snort from the woman. "Heh, fair enough." A pause followed, which she filled herself: "So, mind if I ask a question?"

"Thou art awfully curious for a common bully."

"Bitchy much? It's not like you got your ass handed to you earlier, so relax already."

Wendy scowled, but let the matter rest. That woman may annoy her, but most anything about today did. She spared another glance at her curvy form, most of it hidden by that thick jacket. How did she find her anyway? "For my peace of mind, did you follow me?"

"Hm? Nah, I just saw you up here by chance." A snort followed. "And suddenly you can talk normally?"

"It is a chore to accomodate fools," Wendy retorted. Justifying her way of speech was at least familiar territory. "You are at least courteous enough to warrant the effort."

"Heh. Thanks, I guess." The older woman let the silence run its course before speaking up again: "Okay, so, what's with those scales? Why do you have them?" She idly waved for Wendy, whose gaze turned back to her.

The demi-dragon needed a moment to formulate a response and a moment longer to not speak to her like a child. "...they are mine. I need neither reason nor justification, for these scales are a mark of who I am."

"So either you're a roleplayer, or you mean it." Her dismissive comment made Wendy twitch in annoyance. The still air grew heavy in response, but her new acquaintance merely rolled her eyes. "Heavens above, you're a piece of work. So just to make sure, this has nothing to with Fairy Tail's guild master, right?"

Curiousity overcame annoyance almost instantly. "No. Why would it?"

Her response began with a sigh and a faint smile. "Have you been living under a rock the last months? She was featured everywhere for a while. Like, I see at least ten people with fake scales pretending they're half-dragons like her every day."

Suddenly, Wendy found another reason to be mad. She exhaled slowly, willing the air calm before it began to crush the weird girl. Do not shoot the messenger and all that. "Of all the things," she muttered. "Is this why you attempted to torment me?"

She shrugged. "Yeah, pretty much. I'm so done with seeing that shit everywhere."

"Perhaps you would do better confirming whether your target is an imposter before accosting them."

Another shrug was all the answer she received. Somehow, this odd person was not even acknowledging her black eye or the fact they were at each other's throats earlier. It somehow reminded her of Natsu, now that she thought about it. Sighing, Wendy changed the subject: "I am Wendy, what is your name?"

"Yukino, nice to meetcha." A grin was thrown Wendy's way, Yukino's gaze trailing over her neck. "So they're real?"

The demi-dragon arched an eyebrow and parted her hair. It ran down to her thighs at this point, kept eternally pristine by her nature. Yukino leaned in to study the revealed band of scales and Wendy let her. A part of her wanted to shy away from a pretty woman being this close, but it was in the minority.

"Now that I see them up close, they're pretty cute." The verdict made Wendy preen, but what followed gave her pause: "Can I touch them?"

Her eyes narrowed momentarily, but Yukino could not really see it from this close. Wendy managed to ignore the faint hint of flowery perfume that assaulted her nose as well. Assorted smells, she disregarded also. This woman really tested her patience today. But then again, she was courteous so far. "Very well."

Warm fingers trailed over her scales a moment later. The soft strokes made her relax, leaning into Yukino's touch. The older woman chuckled. "You like that, eh?"

"Shut up, they are sensitive and I had a long day."

Her grumbling earned another huff, but Yukino kept her fingers dancing. "Want to talk about it."

Wendy shrugged weakly, almost dislodging the pleasant fingers. She wanted to rant about human stupidity quite badly, but talking about it would only annoy her again. Then again, the not-quite massage she currently received dispersed her discomfort. Why not indulge Yukino, as long as she kept going?

"I bought land to build a home near Crocus. This at least went well, but the person from the bureau made everything else difficult." She scowled again at the memory. "Is it so unreasonable to expect humans to actually tell a real dragon from a fake one?"

"Real dragons have four legs and wings," Yukino countered, "and are pretty much extinct." The reminder of Grandine's absence drew a low growl, but she cut it off moments later.

"I was not done yet. But no, dragons are not extinct. Almost, but not entirely. I know because I currently live with one and we will relocate to the space I bought. That man did not believe me, no matter how I tried to explain that an actual dragon will come here peacefully. At this point it is no longer my concern if a panic breaks out."

"Ah. So they didn't take you seriously?"

Wendy nodded against Yukino's hands, then pulled away to scowl at Crocus again. Both for stupid clerks and the absence of gentle scritches. This time it was a more reflexive response though, she managed to calm down. "You are good with your fingers."

A moment of silence hung between them before Yukino huffed. "I guess? Say, if you just bought land, you're not from here, right?" Wendy nodded. "Where are you staying?"

She was about to respond when she realised why Yukino asked: dusk approached. Staying in the snowy cold at night was not advisable for most; Wendy could bear it, but wasting away all these hours until the capital woke again would be miserable. "I, admittedly, did not have time to look into accomodations yet."

The thought did not even cross her mind after all this time in the wilderness.

"How about you come stay at my place tonight?"

The sudden offer drew her gaze back to Yukino. She sniffed again just to make sure she got the right idea and yes, Yukino did not mean anything else by it. Her lack of response was taken for confusion and the older woman threw her a reassuring smile. "It's just my sister and me, it'll be fine. We can call it even after today."

A peace offering then. Wendy did not think one was needed, but she would not refuse hospitality. "Very well. Thank you."

"It's cool. Come on then."

She followed Yukino without hesitation. The evening crowds were less dense, allowing them to move quickly; Wendy made certain to walk by her side instead of trundling after her, lest she be distracted.

As it turned out, her new friend lived in a small house in the outskirts. Yukino threw open the door and waltzed inside, leaving Wendy behind to will her feet clean before entering. The scent of sizzling beef wafted from one room in particular; it made her mouth water despite the fact she did not need much food anymore. Shaking off the moment of weakness, she closed the door and listened what Yukino told her sister in the kitchen. A quick summary of having 'met' someone new who needed a place to stay the night. She smirked over the creative editing.

"What am I going to do with you?" another voice answered with fond exasperation. Yukino squawked indignantly for some reason. "But alright. Now let's see who you..." The voice trailed off just as Angel's head poked through the doorframe. Wendy blinked at her, equally surprised. She did not really know how to greet her, either.

"What is it?" Yukino chimed in, pushing open the door to look between them. Their unintentional staring contest was broken and Angel began to chuckle.

"Oh well, what a surprise. Hello, Wendy."

"Angel. I can not say it is a pleasure, but hello."

"Hah, surprisingly blunt from what I remember of you. But yeah, I get it." Ignoring her befuddled sibling, she motioned Wendy into the kitchen. "And it's Solano now, no more Angel."

"Very well."

While she strolled past them, Yukino finally found her voice: "You know each other?"

"Yes-" "Unfortunately." "-pff, okay, that's fair." Despite Wendy's quip, Solano explained to her sister: "Remember the little group that did us in a few months back? I know I told you about it. Wendy was one of them. She's a Dragonslayer. And, now that I know it was her, I can guess who gave you that black eye. You need to come up with better lies, by the way."

Wendy snorted, unaffected by Yukino's instinctual glare. Now she remembered that there was something about a sister. The memory was far more crisp now that she was reminded. Everything was since her metamorphosis began.

Thankfully, the conversation turned to lighter subjects afterward; Yukino interrogated her about what magic she knew, then they discussed recent events in Crocus and how Solano's classes were going. But it was getting late and everyone had a long day, so both teens were soon ushered to bed.

She did not begrudge Solano's lack of understanding. In fact, her care reminded the blunette of Quelaan. That was why instead of arguing, she merely took the offered couch and sat awake half the night. Her needs were not diminished to the point she could go entirely without sleep yet, but more than enough to spend hours in thought. Yukino traipsed by for the bathroom at some point; Wendy idly noted her new friend slept in her undergarments, but refrained from commenting.

The next morning, she was actually woken up by Yukino. Instead of leaving her alone however, she obviously had to develop a helpful streak. Sharing the table with her and Solano a second time was... pleasant, all things considered. Yukino called for Aries to join them as well; the ram was overjoyed to see Wendy again, lightening the mood all by herself.

"So I was thinking," Solano cut through the amicable chatter after a while. "Yukino just started out as a freelancer." She had the table's undivided attention. "Any chance you would team up with her?"

Wendy swallowed her immediate dismissal with the bite of sandwich she had been chewing. She did not need a newcomer to baby. Yukino did not appear overly competent, but anyone could be trained up to standard; she herself was living proof of that. A lack of talent could be made up by hard work and practice. And, she mused with a glance at Solano, there was a precedent in the older sister.

Not to mention, she did want to make more friends. That settled it.

"I do not see why not. If you want to?"

"Sure, as long as you don't try to boss me around?"

"Only if I find you incapable of making sound decisions."

"Fuck you."

Wendy snorted, as did Solano. Yukino's emerging pout only drew actual giggles out of them. Wendy transitioned into a dry cough, though. It took a moment to settle and her throat was dry afterward. Breathing grew more difficult by the day again, it seemed. She was only gone for a bit over a week.

Heaving a sigh, she waved off the concern. "Tis alright, I will be fine. For now though, I have to head out and inspect my acquisition, then call everyone over."

She well noticed the suspicious look Solano threw her way. Maybe that was why she did not object Yukino tagging along with her new partner. She could not come herself, what with classes demanding her attention. Either way, the younger Agria trailed after Wendy all the way out of Crocus.

It was all she had been promised, but nothing more. Decently sized, mostly even ground. Currently it was merely a meadow with some trees. Wendy made certain to double-check the borders against a map she had been given. She absently took notice of a number of houses strewn across the countryside, most of them farmsteads. She was not the only one who decided on settling outside of the walls.

Once she found all to her satisfaction, Wendy turned north and focussed on distant skies. Her will was indomitable and none could oppose it. So she willed her message to be relayed.

A minute passed, then two.

"What are you doing?"

"Calling them. Now let me focus."

Yukino huffed and strutted away, but she kept quiet. Wendy's brow creased, perspiration slowly gathering on her skin. She did not even move, but her body shook under the strain of bending reality into a pretzel. I am here, she called into the ether, come to me, my swarm!

And they came. Her sharp eyes spied a dot in the distance and she relaxed. Now that she knew her call was heard, she merely had to wait for them and dry her sweat. She never realised that her clumsy call for the Everlasting left a very confused Priscilla in her office that day.

The first to arrive was Carla, though. Her surrogate daughter swooped in on wings of white, slamming into Wendy's chest. "At last!" she declared from within her embrace, "tis about time. Quelaan began to worry!"

"I'm... preeeetty sure that's no dragon," Yukino quipped from the side.

Wendy threw her a look and pointed upward. Just as she did, screaming started back on Crocus' walls. The black dragon Kalameet was clearly visible now, descending at speed. His surprisingly prehensile front legs were holding Quelaan of Izalith; neither of them seemed at all happy with this arrangement, but it worked and so they compromised. Yukino stared in awe as the dragon landed with inhuman grace, floating to a stop without so much as a disturbed blade of grass. He set down the spider lady before surveying their new domain. Quelaan immediately scuttled away to do similarly.

"You were saying?"

"..."

Yukino still stared at the living legend in front of her. Kalameet for his part ignored the human girl. "Tis... acceptable," he judged. The audible pause made it clear he mainly agreed to accomodate Wendy, but she appreciated it regardless. Then his head rose and he tensed; when the younger dragon turned to look at Crocus also, she found an entire detachment of Rune Knights and regular knights marching their way.

"Allow me," she requested of Kalameet, who nodded tersely. Yukino received a soft shove to snap her out of the awestruck silence, trailing along. Wendy heard her muttered "whoa", but did not comment.

No, she used all her words to engage the knight captain coming to investigate a dragon arriving out of nowhere. She identified herself as the owner of this particular plot, provided her papers, and explained that she tried to inform the authorities, only to be brushed off. Thankfully, these people were reasonable and listened instead of doing something they would regret. The man in charge of the Rune Knights inquired to the name of whoever she spoke to, which Wendy provided. They left soon after, only a handful of observers staying behind to ensure Kalameet remained peaceful. He did not even acknowledge them.

At this point Yukino recovered from what transpired. "Sounds like someone will lose their job," she quipped. Wendy shrugged.

"And what do I care?"

"You ought to, my sweet," Quelaan chimed in immediately. She loomed over the two of them, making Yukino flinch away in surprise. "Caring for one another is a virtue. Where would we be if not for the bonds compassion forges?"

She had some choice words about that clerk affording her none of that to begin with, but swallowed them. Quelaan was not wrong. Instead, the young woman inclined her head and dropped the subject. She was immediately drawn into a recounting of her journey by Carla while Yukino awkwardly spoke with the Chaos witch. It was commendable that she tried despite her clear alienation.

"This is so weird," she muttered to Wendy some time later. One hand flew out, motioning for their odd swarm. "How did you find all these oddballs? And a dragon on top of it?"

"Rude," Carla sniffed. Wendy absently rubbed her head to keep her appeased.

"Quelaan was my caretaker since I was a child, Carla's egg I hatched myself, and Kalameet is a... recent addition."

"I see." Yukino kept whatever else she meant to say to herself. Her gaze swept the area again, paused, and returned to Wendy. "But you kinda don't have anywhere to stay. I'd offer our couch, but we don't really have the space for, uh, that." Another motion toward the massive forms of Quelaan and Kalameet.

Instead of considering her offer, Wendy scoffed. She stalked off with a confused Yukino in tow. Once she found a good spot, the blunette began to focus again. Shaping earth she could see directly was a lot easier than sending a call into the distance, but she also practiced this before. The ground welled up, compressing into walls and stretching into a roof. When it was done, Wendy grumbled quietly to herself.

"That's... something? I didn't know you can do earth magic."

"I don't."

They surveyed the humble abode Wendy created. The kindest terms to describe the partly warped structure was that it had four walls and appeared steady. It was also the size of a single room. She never tried for something this big before and was sweating.

"Below par, but still acceptable," Kalameet rumbled. Wendy felt his will take hold and flatten the ground, then raise a small mansion without any effort. "Behold what thee aspire toward. Again." And he flattened the entire thing, much to Wendy's annoyance. No free room for her.

"Well, so much for the couch."

She really did not need those quips. Even though Yukino seemed dumbfounded again, Wendy threw her a dry look. "If you wish to share my bed, you need but ask."

"Wha- could you not?"

The sight of a flustered woman pleased Wendy once again. She impulsively winked. "I can stop, assuming you want me to?"

"Yes, please."

"Very well, but the offer stands."

She left it at that, well aware she could find company elsewhere. However, she already knew Yukino a little and was certainly curious of the new experience. Not to mention Crocus was large and seeking mates too aggresively would tarnish her reputation. Even as a dragon, she remembered to keep that in mind.

Meanwhile, Quelaan chuckled quietly over their banter. Carla wound out of Wendy's arms to pout at Kalameet. "Tis a travesty! Thine influence turned my Wendy into a harlot."

"Tis her prerogative," the dragon huffed back. Wendy appreciated his indifference to the matter and went back to work on her living arrangements.

Yukino stayed by her side, quietly observing. Despite her focus, Wendy could almost feel the other woman's gaze scanning her toned body. She may lack supple curves like Yukino displayed, but hers were still present. Not to mention that field work had left her fit. At some point, the white-haired woman sighed, rubbing her legs together. "We talk about it again once we know each other better, okay?"

Wendy just huffed, smirking to herself. She may not be able to read Yukino's thoughts, but her keen sense of smell revealed quite clearly that the older woman's mind was in the gutter. But she would not press for now. Patience was a virtue, not to mention that she felt the allure of a prize that took time and effort to claim.

As she resolved to bide her time, Wendy found once again that her metamorphosis had at least one complete positive to it: her previous confidence issues were gone, well and truly. The old her never would have been able to pursue romantic interests so clearly, much less carnal ones. But those were thoughts for later, now she had to build a house for herself.
 
6.6 Origin
"Hair magic, while unorthodox and somewhat restricted, offers benefits of its own. Being able to manipulate one's body hair at will offers any number of additional limbs, which is helpful in close combat and civilian applications. However, unless the learning wizard combines this discipline with another trick or finds telekinesis too difficult, I would recommend the latter over hair magic. Another factor to consider is that the versatility of this discipline is the length of one's hair. Magically growing one's hair out for use is NOT recommended, as it can quickly deprive the body of nutrients. If substituting Ethernano, the practice will cause balding once no longer maintained."

-excerpt from "The Soul of Magic"

When news of Wendy Marvell's return reached Priscilla, she felt ecstatic and relieved at first. Then she became apprehensive; the final natural Dragonslayer's reemergence meant she was well. After hearing of Tenrou Island's destruction from Precht and subsequently that Wendy fell ill from Master Bob, she feared the worst. Moreover, she realised she put off revealing their duty for too long; Natsu and Gajeel paid the price for her negligence, so Priscilla had vowed to tell at least Wendy the truth posthaste.

It had been two weeks since the final Dragonslayer's return to Crocus when Priscilla heard. Although she wanted to drop everything and go, the guild master was expected to remain near their guildhall. Dragon or no, she did not need more complications in her work; even if it was unlikely anyone would raise the issue with her. So Priscilla hoped for the best and spent a week preparing; all the paperwork was finished, not that there was as much while most of the troublemakers were absent. Next she invited Warrod to hold down the fort in her absence. He agreed without hesitation, most likely to see moody Mavis.

These days, Mavis spent most of her time in the guildhall due to her pregnancy. Her mood shifted from cheerful to depressed to upset in minutes, but she always perked up when Warrod or Precht visited. She and Priscilla thankfully managed to sort themselves out, though absolution for the dragon remained a distant dream.

When the current master approached the founder, she had her nose buried in the usual books. Just like Priscilla before her, Mavis read Zeref's work religiously. She learned from it at impressive speed, perhaps drew the same comfort as well. Priscilla could only hope so. She almost did not want to interrupt, but someone had to know where she went. Mystogan lingered nearby as well, offering a faint nod when she approached him first. After that, Mavis received a gentle hug goodbye. She even returned it, trying and failing to wrap lithe arms around Priscilla's massive form.

Afterward, the dragon teleported to Crocus. Of all the magic she learned, this may be the most useful yet. The range limits constraining humans did not apply, though she still required an idea of what her destination looked like. Or how far away it was. Meredy had a lot more trouble with it, though; the pinkette studied alongside Priscilla. She was still a beginner.

Due to it being mid-February, a blanket of snow still covered the capital that day. It crunched under her bare feet as she strode through the streets, exchanging greetings with various people. Yet Priscilla did not stop for any of them, least of all the many teens wearing fake scales. In fact, their garbled attempts to emulate her own speech patterns annoyed the dragon. She barely stopped herself from lashing out at them; idolising a greater being was only natural, so she stayed her hand. Even if badly crafted facsimiles and flaking paint irritated her.

Soon she left the city gates, following the road for a short while. With the exact location memorised, finding the plot was simple. Wendy did well procuring land with her compensation for the Oracion Seis job, she mused; it was a foundation for the future. Decently sized, sporting a small hill she felt was not there before. A makeshift fence of wooden stakes connected by strands of silk declared the Dragonslayer's domain.

Priscilla simply raised her legs higher and cleared the marker without a second thought. Her mind was on more immediate concerns, such as the Chaos witch she would likely meet today. Primal anger flared, only to be pushed back. She would be curteous for Wendy's sake. Hopefully, Quelaan of Izalith would be as well. For Wendy's sake.

Although she was resolute, the wrath gnawed at her insides every step of the way. It only went forgotten when Priscilla recognised a strange quality to the area. Beside the humble and somewhat misbuilt stone abode crowning the hill, everything around her brimmed with the presence of eternity. It laced the air and permeated the earth totally. A sense of foreboding, perhaps. Lesser beings would feel none of it, merely the instinctual desire to flee. To her, it signified the presence of kin.

Priscilla stopped, amazed at the impossibility. Barring Ankhseram, Everlasting dragons were not supposed to live in this realm. She almost dashed forward to see who may have found their way here, but forced herself back to a normal pace. At the same time, she pushed her will against the other's presence to make hers known. The clash was minor. Snow melted, grass dried and died before growing back. A handful of critters searching for food fled in mortal terror. Then the other acquiesced her announcement and it ended.

Before she reached the house, its door flew open to reveal Wendy herself. She stared up at Priscilla in surprise, who was just as shocked at the sight of her. Wendy changed since last they met. Her aquamarine scales were a dead giveaway, genuine for once. But aside from the physical alteration, the once human girl's presence had grown stronger. Priscilla felt it now where the other presence hid it before. Not quite kin, but close.

But that was for later. Priscilla put on a smile and knelt to greet Wendy. "Word of thy return reached Magnolia. I wished to welcome thee back personally. It seems a great deal has happened to thee in the interim."

Her words allowed Wendy to move past her own surprise. She returned the offered smile and curtsied. "I welcome thee to mine humble home, Master Priscilla. And I greatly appreciate the gesture." She paused there and glanced back; the place she just left was clearly not big enough to accomodate someone about four times her size. "I, err, would invite thee inside, but that may be a mite difficult."

"Tis quite alright," Priscilla responded easily. She burned with curiousity, but stalling further on her self-imposed duty was unacceptable. "Although I wished to speak with you of a matter most important."

Curiously, Wendy dragged her feet in response. She did not meet Priscilla's eyes either, glancing to the side. "Yes, well, I believe I can guess the subject matter."

"Truly?" she could not help but ask. With how unlikely anyone was to guess Zeref's plan, she felt there was something else concerning her at play. Wendy nodded.

"I believe so. Prithee, yonder."

Wendy strode forward to where she was looking before. Priscilla matched her pace and followed the blunette. They crested the hill, only to find a cave's mouth in it. More than large enough to fit even the crossbreed, leading into an actual cavern. The lingering eternity was stronger here and Priscilla's eyes immediately homed in on its origin: a black dragon, studying her with the same kind of interest but far greater intensity.

For one insane moment, Priscilla felt the urge to shy away from his scrutiny. The first Everlasting dragon she ever met beside the kinslayer. Then her nature reasserted itself and she firmed up, standing proud. All the rest were forgotten in favour of him.

"Kalameet," she offered in greeting.

"Indeed," he confirmed needlessly. His voice was even, carrying a hint of curiousity: "Who art thou?"

"I am Priscilla, the Everlasting."

Her claim drew a soft hiss from his throat. She thought she heard at least one gasp as well, but ignored their lessers. Kalameet evaluated her once again. Seconds passed as his will prodded at her and she pushed right back. There was no mistaking their nature, never.

In the end he inclined his head.

"Thou art kin."

Validation lifted an incredible weight from her shoulders. One she carried all her life yet never quite acknowledged. The only one who ever called her kin was the one she never wanted to be associated with. Tension bled out of her body, the only visible sign of Priscilla's relief. She inclined her head in greeting. "Any further conversation will have to wait, as I arrived to speak with Wendy first and foremost. To meet kin is a pleasant surprise."

Now that she stopped to focus exclusively on Kalameet, Priscilla finally took notice of the malformed spider-woman standing on a bed of silk. She held her silence for now, unseeing eyes pointed straight at the crossbreed. Even then, Quelaan of Izalith was clearly noticeable. She had to ask later why Kalameet did not purge her yet.

"Pardon," Wendy interjected politely, "but was this not what you wished to consult about?"

"Not quite."

Priscilla allowed herself a heavy sigh and offered the witch a faint nod. She ought to at least acknowledge her. Quelaan nodded back and kept her silence. When the crossbreed settled on the silken ground, Wendy sat down in front of her, back straight. Then Priscilla began to explain.

"There is no easy way to convey this, so I shall be blunt: thou were raised as a weapon." Wendy's eyes narrowed and the witch shifted, but Priscilla gave neither a chance to interject. "Art thou aware of the last living dragon born here on Earthland?" This time she received a confused tilt of the head.

"How dost thou mean, the last? Several yet remain, somewhere."

"I am afraid not," she shot down the misconception. Wendy growled, her presence pressing down on Priscilla. She weathered it easily. When the blunette continued to annoy her, she forced the area under her control. A whipcrack of air sounded and the child fell back with a squeak, rubbing her forehead. "Do not presume to threaten me," Priscilla commented. Kalameet huffed at that while Wendy grumbled.

"No matter. Thou were raised by Grandine, Queen of the Sky Dragons. Just like Natsu rose under King Igneel and Gajeel under King Metalicana. Dragon royalty gave thee all that was needed to destroy their greatest foe. They art no more. Gone, one and all. Fallen to a kinslayer."

The pressure that followed on the final word came not from Wendy. No, it exuded from Kalameet. Priscilla nodded at him. "Much like our own, except his power grew with the dragons he slew. Just about immune to all local magic, Dragonslayers are the only ones to affect him in this matter. None remained after his genocide. The lingering spirits of those he slew refused to disperse and picked successors to one day bring him low."

Wendy ground her teeth. Her power lashed outward, tearing deep furrows into the earthen ground. Priscilla snatched Carla out of the air to protect her from the outburst while Quelaan scooted closer. The witch gently grasped Wendy to comfort her. From her embrace, the child glared at Priscilla. "How did I not know? Why did Grandine never say? This is slander, she never would have made me a weapon!"

"And where is her spirit now?" Kalameet added with a smattering of curiousity. Priscilla sighed once more. "How has it weathered centuries without losing coherence?"

"Such is the other matter to be explained. Wendy, thou were born four hundred years past. During the age of dragons. The same goes for your fellow Dragonslayers. All three of you were sent forward in time, to a new age with enough Ethernano to sustain you. The kings and queen gave the last of themselves to power the device. This is why thou will never find them. They art no more, well and truly. Thou were never abandoned, of this I can assure thee."

Another wave of raw violence followed. Wendy had begun to cry. Priscilla fell silent, giving the poor girl time to process.

"Tis an impressive undertaking indeed," Quelaan broke the ensuing silence gently. She stroked Wendy's hair but kept meeting Priscilla's gaze. "These other Dragonslayers, were they aware?"

"No."

Her immediate response garnered Wendy's attention once more. Priscilla could not help but grimace. "For the longest time, I hoped they would never need to know. That by investigation and perhaps luck, I could find this kinslayer and deal with him. Alas, he found them first." She shook her head at the dawning horror. "They art not dead, merely lost. He descended on Tenrou Island during the S-rank trials a few months back. A friend managed to hide them in time before he could destroy them. This made me realise it is too dangerous for thee not to know. My apologies for waiting too long."

The demi-dragon had slumped in Quelaan's arms. She hung limply for a long moment, then began to wiggle. "I need some fresh air," she murmured and was let go. When Carla fluttered over to follow her surrogate mother and friend, Wendy pushed her away. "Alone, please."

Her blank tone hurt more than any amount of vitriol ever could have. Priscilla watched her go with a grimace. Now she was confronted with Quelaan and Kalameet. The dragon growled something unintelligible, likely related to their shared hatred of kinslayers. The witch frowned as well. "Was this truly necessary?" she inquired. Priscilla simply nodded.

"These lesser dragons' resourcefulness is to be commended," Kalameet commented next. Some of his scales scraped the wall he sat against, then he prowled forward. "But enough of that. Thou intrigue me, Priscilla. Kin indeed, yet artificial. A crossbreed without doubt. Why art thou and by whose hand?"

Folding both hands in her lap, Priscilla answered curtly: "The kinslayer created me, but for what purpose I know not." Her words earned a growl at the additional reminder, but he let the point stand. Hence why the crossbreed continued: "I never asked and he never said in the short time we remained close. My survivial is a miracle in itself, being born in Anor Londo as I was. Recently, I began to assume it must have been his design that kept my life spared and exile all I faced."

"Fascinating."

Kalameet stalked close, eldritch orange emanating from his forehead. "What reason would he have for such designs, I wonder?" She already knew what the black dragon was about to do. Priscilla sat still and allowed him to rise above her. She was not intimidated, merely apprehensive to finally receive an answer.

As the light enveloped her, a faint itch developed along her entire body. It ran deeper than just the skin, affecting flesh and bone, then even her soul. Kalameet carefully poked and prodded every fibre of her being, inspected all facets of she who was Priscilla. After some time she began to smell something like reverence on his breath.

Then the light cut off and he fell back onto his haunches. Raucuous laughter shook the cave, confusing the three women still present.

"What dost thou see?" Quelaan queried once he calmed down. Kalameet huffed once more, one paw motioning for Priscilla.

"I beheld perfection carved into life."

His reverent tone gave them pause and he chuckled again. His primal gaze flickered once more, raking over Priscilla with utmost gentleness. "I see now, I see." He did not elaborate for a long minute. When he did, the crossbreed hissed in surprise: "Seath never truly turned against us. No, if anything, he saw what we as a whole were too conceited to understand. He was willing to risk everything, forsake even his own name, for the survival of our race."

"Thou would grant a kinslayer his name?"

Priscilla was more confused than angry. She did not understand what Kalameet saw just yet. He understood it too, inclining his head. "Indeed I would. This once he deserves to be called by name again. For he created thee, forged thee from the powdered scales of every Everlasting dragon bar seven that yet lived or were lost. From Ankhseram to Tespaar, all as one. Their scales are thy scales. His flesh forged thy flesh. And a spark of Gwyn's own soul breathed life into thee, creating equilibrium where none should be possible. Thou art beautiful in structure, harmoniously combining our nature with a soul born of the First Flame.

"Seath did that which none of us could: he induced evolution in a race that deemed itself perfected since the beginning of all. Thou art a greater being still and within thee, we keep on living forevermore. Thou art our evolution and our revenge upon the gods that broke our wings."

Priscilla stared at him. She was faintly aware that no one knew how to react to his revelation. All this time she had no idea what she truly was. There were suspicions, true, but she could never confirm any of them. Her creator's, Seath's, motives suddenly appeared far different than she ever assumed. The final words he ever told her returned unbidden: "Thou art too valuable to fall as all the rest have. I have no regrets."

That was why he learned to manipulate Gwyn's court. The only reason he put himself into its midst. To keep his work well-protected when she inevitably fell to the urges he saw fell his entire race. Realisation made Priscilla feel faint. A giant plot, carefully laid out and brought to fruition right under Gwyn's own nose.

A giggle sounded through the cave. Soon it grew until full-blown laughter rumbled from Priscilla's throat. She laughed for the hilarity of it all, this giant chess game she was the unwitting King piece of. "I see now!" she brought out between fits, looking firmly at Kalameet. "What fool I was, to never consider. Even after centuries I never realised. Perhaps we were wrong indeed, to judge Seath as we did."

The black dragon huffed. Dirt rained down on the entire area as Priscilla's unbound nature shook the earth.

"Would this make thee queen of the dragons, then?"

Her laughter cut off abruptly and both dragons stared at Quelaan of Izalith, whose expression was decidedly mixed. Kalameet scoffed, as did Priscilla; she took to explain to the witch: "Ludicrous. There art no hierarchies amongst kin. Prithee remember that."

While part-dragon and part-spider finally became acquainted, Wendy had fled into the countryside to cry. Once her tears ran dry, she left her hiding spot. A deep depression formed in the earth, a sinkhole waiting to snatch up unfortunate travelers. For the first time since her body was eternally locked in its last throes of puberty, her libido held absolutely no hold. She climbed a lone rock and vacantly stared at the sky. Nothing made sense anymore where she felt she finally understood the world a mere hour ago.

Her breathing evened out before growing shallow. Thoughts slowly ground to a halt as minutes passed. Then an hour. Wendy barely realised the passing of time until a soft voice called out to her: "Um, are you alright?"

She flinched out of her trance. Anger rushed up first to fill the void and she snapped back while still turning: "Do I look alright?!"

The young woman who approached her shied away. She was taller than Wendy, with long, fire red hair and supple curves. The spark of lust that followed her observation only fueled her anger right now. "Go away!"

The redhead's shoulders slumped and she left dejectedly; a muttered apology barely reached Wendy's ears. She grimaced and stamped out the flame of anger in her heart. A part of her wanted to disregard the hurt of a lesser being, but she mercilessly crushed its voice.

"Wait!"

The woman stopped, glancing back worriedly. Wendy could not meet her eyes. "I am terribly sorry. I should not have snapped at you. Please come back?"

She expected to be rejected. Much to her relief, she was not. The curvy redhead approached timidly, as if expecting another tongue-lashing. Wendy took notice of her brown tunic and travel pack. She was not dressed to impress, but her body still managed. Wendy took a deep breath to banish these thoughts, not that it helped.

She patted the rock she sat on in silent invitation. The woman sat down without any more prompting, studying Wendy curiously. "It, it is alright," she murmured. When Wendy merely averted her gaze again, though this time so as to not stare, she continued: "Do you want to talk about it?" A headshake was all the blunette could give. "Then, um, do you want a hug? Eep!"

The offer was barely complete when Wendy leapt into her arms. She was warm, almost unnaturally so. Even though she held on gingerly, Wendy nuzzled against her. The sheer comfort almost drew more tears out, but mostly it helped her relax. Dexterous fingers began to pet her head. That, too, she was grateful for. She would not be alright for a while, not with the news of Grandine's passing. But it helped.

"Thank you."

The murmured thanks earned her a tighter squeeze. Which was when she noticed how tense the redhead seemed to be. She nuzzled against her a while longer before inquiring about it: "Why are you so skittish?"

As if on cue, the other woman began to fidget. Wendy could feel it clearly, being this close to her. "Ah, well," she stuttered, "this, erm, this is the first time I ever hugged anyone. Everyone at home is so much bigger than me, erm. Am I doing it right?"

Wendy's emotional state turned on its head with those words. She quietly worked her way out of the embrace, confusing the redhead. She seemed dejected again, at least until she was dragged against Wendy's chest in return. "You did good," she reassured her. "Thank you, truly."

"O-Oh. This is nice."

She hummed in agreement, playing with those hot braids in response. Literally hot, in this case. "It is, is it not?" After some time spent luxuriating in the warmth, she carried on: "May I have your name?"

"Ah, yes. I am Flare. And you?"

"Wendy. A pleasure."

Their halting conversation soon revealed that the aptly named Flare only just arrived in Fiore. She traveled far, but would not say why this kingdom of all places was her destination beyond wanting to learn magic. In the end Wendy invited her over, much like Yukino did for her a few weeks back.

In the meantime, Priscilla mulled over the story Quelaan and Kalameet finished telling. Now that she knew the secret of Nirvana and Wendy's shifting nature, everything became more clear. She had to push back the urge to see that new archtree for herself, though. "How peculiar," was her final verdict. Quelaan huffed in response, but did not contradict her.

Just then, an unfamiliar voice interrupted them: "Hellooooo? Anyone here? Anyone know where Wendy is?"

Her head turned to the cave's mouth, where a somewhat familiar person came into view. It took her a few seconds to place the face, being so similar to Solano Agria. The newcomer was younger, though.

"Be welcome, Yukino," Quelaan greeted her kindly, which answered that question. She held her attention as well. "But I am afraid now is not a good time. Wendy requested some time to herself."

Yukino entered fully, but kept a clear distance from Kalameet. "Why's that? Did something happen?" Then her eyes fell on the other woman present, hidden in the half-dark. "Wait. Master Priscilla?"

"The one," she confirmed with a faint smile over Yukino's gaping. "A pleasure to make your acquaintance, Ms. Agria." She was fully aware that 'Fairy Tail's guild master knows my name' would throw the poor thing off even more. At this point however, she fully understood why Makarov and Warrod liked to mess with people so much.

While Yukino still delivered her best impression of a fish, Quelaan's head turned back to the entrance. "Welcome back," she greeted before anyone could even see the next arrival. "Who is your friend?"

Wendy entered moments later, but she was not alone. Another, taller woman followed in her wake, gleaming hair spending light. The sight of Quelaan created not revulsion, but outright curiousity. Kalameet, then, produced awe. Yukino was distracted also, giving Priscilla the moment she needed to recognise this one. Her mood rose immediately.

"Oh my, Flare! How fortunate we meet again!"

This time she was genuinely happy. It had been more than a year since her trip to Sun Village. Flare's head swivelled Priscilla's way and she brightened. Quite literally so, her hair set itself ablaze. "Friend Priscilla!" she greeted joyfully, charging forward until she stood in front of her. "Oh, this is so wonderful! I was hoping to see you, but not this soon. I only just arrived!" She almost bounced in place, much to the giantess' amusement. Then she drew both hands to her chest. "Oh, you have to see this! I did it!" And then the humour faded in favour of surprise. Flare drew living flame out of her bosom, flaring and flickering in sync with her heartbeat.

The entire room stopped to behold the sight. Flare presented her soul proudly, its heat driving away the vestiges of Winter that made it inside. It lit up the entire cave. Kalameet shuffled in place and Priscilla felt a similar irritation. But her soul was too small to belong to a Lord. Vibrant, yes. Fire, yes. But not divine.

"Congratulations," she praised the beaming redhead. "Were it not for Wendy here, I would not have believed this a possible skill to learn." She felt a little awkward with their positions, though; either Flare did not realise how freely she offered her light to be plucked if Priscilla so felt, or she trusted her anyway. Then her more analytical mind took over. "Although it appears quite different from hers."

Flare's eyes widened and she whirled around, flame clutched to her chest. "You can do it too? Show me, show me!"

Taken aback, the Dragonslayer still followed her request. A matrix of aquamarine blocks presented itself, almost static where she recalled it shifting rapidly in the past. Wendy made certain to keep it close to herself, though. Yukino watched all this from the sidelines, clearly feeling awkward.

"Odd," Wendy mused after studying Flare's soul momentarily. "I did not notice before, but you smell somewhat... off. Not entirely human," she added. That was enough to morph Flare's confusion into understanding.

"Oh, yes, of course. I was blessed with a spark of grand Atlas Flame's power. Maybe this is why we are so different?" The admission explained a lot to Priscilla, but definitely caught attention from Quelaan and Kalameet.

"So," Yukino interrupted with faux nonchalance. "Anyone care to introduce me? Were you picking up girls again while I wasn't looking?"

Wendy shrugged while Flare's hair flashed momentarily, likely in embarassment. It did so again when the blunette bantered back: "Not quite, but perhaps I should consider if you fluke out again."

"Is it my fault you're a nympho?"

"It is your fault you lack stamina."

The dry quips drew a chuckle from Priscilla. Carla, since forgotten by the greater beings, grumbled something in her corner. Quelaan only offered a good-natured sigh. Flare, meanwhile, blushed clearly in the shine of her own hair. In a bid to drown out their banter, she nervously turned back to Priscilla. "I, ah, came to study magic."

This explained a lot; Fiore was well-known to be a frontrunner in magical development, second only to Alvarez. The Empire beyond the ocean was on the verge of collapse, however. With the sudden death of their immortal emperor and unifier, they were in a major crisis. Zeref held it all together, much like the tome she still kept secret admitted to her. A safety net toward Acnologia in case the Dragonslayers were found wanting in the end.

She shook off the memories that came with her train of thought. A smile was offered to Flare instead. "I know a few people who may be interested in taking disciples, if you are so inclined. Do you have any particular desires?"

"Ah, well. Not as such, no." She dragged her feet shily, chancing a look at Priscilla from between her burning bangs. "Do you, um, take students yourself?"

The crossbreed needed a moment to catch her meaning. Unfortunately, she had to shake her head. "Time does not permit such. I became guild master since last we met and my duties are manifold. Although you are of course welcome to visit Fairy Tail whenever you desire. The same remains true for you, Wendy," she added. "And you as well, Yukino."

Especially the white-haired woman was taken aback by being included all of a sudden. She and Wendy finished their banter by now, having stayed at the sidelines for a moment. "Really? It's okay?"

"Of course. The more the merrier, no?"

Kalameet puffed out a gust of air, clearly derisive. Priscilla threw him a scathing look, but their wordless exchange ended without conclusion. She shook her head and turned back to the humans. Now that she had time to study Wendy, she realised the young Dragonslayer was not too upset anymore. "Though perhaps you already made a friend on your own?" she teased Flare gently. Neither of them met her gaze.

Chuckling, Priscilla stood and exchanged a nod with Quelaan. Then she addressed the children: "Regardless, I shall take my leave now. The purpose of my visit is complete and while I would like to linger, duty calls. Do please visit Magnolia, I would love to speak with you more. All of you."

Saying her goodbyes, she courteously left the cave. Everyone bar Kalameet followed to see her off; he simply let her leave, as kin did not bother with meaningless goodbyes. They would meet again, sooner or later. Once outside however, Priscilla turned around, curtsied, and teleported back home. She could not help but grin as she imagined their dumbfounded expressions.

Then it was back to work. True to form, Warrod did no more than entertain Mavis and the local children.
 
6.7 Reunion
"For brevity's sake, this tome will not cover every obscure subtype of any given discipline, but rather focus on the particularly noteworthy ones. Individual applications are excluded for the same reason. Most disciplines can be customised to the user's desires, though. It merely takes a creative mind and practice."

-excerpt from "The Soul of Magic", foreword

A ray of early sunlight kissed Wendy's forehead. Her eyes opened in response to the stimulus, the demi-dragon already awake. She blinked several times, then rose. She ignored the two bundles to her left and right. They were still in deep slumber after an evening spent with snacks, games, and chatting.

Well aware that Flare would never be cold, she threw her blanket over Yukino and resisted the urge to sneak a peek. That was inappropriate right now. Then Wendy snuck out of her bedroom to start the day. She took a quick dip in the underground river Kalameet graciously connected to her basement. After that came two hours of meditation on her nature and the world around it; two hours every day, merely to keep in tune with her soul's minute changes. She barely even minded anymore, what with the many months of routine. The fact she could subsist on three hours of sleep per day made more than up for it.

As always, by the time her mind snapped out of focus, Carla was snuggled into her lap. After spending another ten minutes or so petting her, she rose and shook out her legs. Then came breakfast, joined by a grumbling Yukino and bright Flare; the difference between them in the morning was like night and day. If anything, Flare appeared even happier than usual after their impromptu sleepover.

Mind, she still got flustered over her new friends' flirty banter, but that was a work-in-progress. After two weeks or so, she at least began getting used to it. Which was for the best, considering her freelance wizard application was approved and she joined their Team Skywing.

After breakfast, Wendy spent some time dancing under Quelaan's watchful eye. Her friends did their own practice, since acquainted with the pyromancer's routine. And after that, Wendy revealed a little surprise: while expanding the underground area, Kalameet found ancient tunnels. They led far down, likely beneath Crocus. And today, Wendy took her team exploring for fun; it would be nice to find an ancient artifact or the like, but she was not aiming for that. This was an exercise for Flare and the team as a whole.

True to her expectations, they found nothing. Flare spent most of the time illuminating their path, Yukino drew a map, and Wendy remained on the lookout for danger. Nothing accosted them.

"Well, it was a wash," Yukino summarised in the evening. All three were tired and sweaty, Flare more so than the other two. "What's the plan for tomorrow?"

Their newest friend piped up after a moment of silence: "Ah, I was thinking, could we go and visit Fairy Tail?" She fidgeted awkwardly, at least until Wendy voiced her agreement. It had been weeks since Priscilla told them to come by. She had questions now, especially about her Everlasting nature. Another artificial dragon may know more about the matter than Kalameet.

Yukino did not mind either, eager as she was to see the guild in Fiore.Wendy felt almost sorry for what would be inflicted on her. Then again, she was smirking for the entire train ride that next morning.

They met up after breakfast and bought their tickets, then set out for Magnolia. Flare marvelled at every station, chattering excitedly at them. Yukino was just as impressed, having never really left the capital before. Wendy felt a pang of nostalgia as they switched trains in Onibas; this was where she once lived, the old cave probably since reclaimed by nature.

She shook it off soon enough. At least she could tease Yukino, who put herself into a fluffy white dress that accentuated her curves. No sign of the usual punk attire. "Perhaps you can snag a suitor after all, at least until they realise what hides beneath the pretty face."

Yukino merely flipped her off, the gesture well at odds with her angelic attire. Wendy giggled. She left it at that, too; Flare also dressed nicely, wearing a crimson dress only a few shades darker than her hair. Wendy did not feel the need and went in dress shirt and a long skirt, though she since purchased new shoes to wear. Her hair was neatly tied into a ponytail.

All was calm when they disembarked in Magnolia Station. Cheerful townsfolk quickly conveyed the city's usual mood. It felt surprisingly similar to the atmosphere during the tournament, just less loaded with anticipation. Wendy still took to the less crowded streets and remained close to her friends; with them being near, their natural scents thankfully blocked out some of the stink. Yukino rolled her eyes at the Dragonslayer's behaviour, but soon glanced around.

"So," she inquired with only a hint of audible curiousity, "any idea what it's like?"

Flare shrugged cheerfully. "Oh, I can just tell they will all be friendly, with Priscilla as the master. This is so exciting!"

"Yeah. They're probably really strict, though. I mean, they got to be, right?"

Wendy was the only one who heard the laughter Yukino's comment drew from several people near enough to overhear. She had to grin as well. Her friends were too busy sharing their ideas of what Fairy Tail was like to notice.

Then they reached the guildhall, towering over all the other buildings. Wendy witnessed her friends' bout of nerves and strode forward instead to push open the door. They were immediately assaulted by a wave of noise, then a sight that left two of the three gaping.

A giant brawl covered two thirds of the taproom. Fists flew, magic circles of all colours brightened the room, and half the furniture was overturned to serve as makeshift barricades. Only three isles of tranquility remained, three tables completely untouched. The first seated a diminutive blonde around Wendy's age and an ancient man with a long, white beard. The second held a blue-haired man nursing a drink. And the third belonged to a trio of figures, two hooded and the third wearing an elaborate mask. The latter group merely leaned out of the way when someone or something came flying, as did the lone wizard closest to the bar. However fierce the fighting got however, it never dared spill toward the blonde with what she assumed to be her grandfather.

Wendy gave her friends a few seconds to soak in the violence before delivering the killing blow: "Seems to be as always."

Then she strolled inside, leaving them behind. Both women scrambled to follow while she decided to approach the girl's table. It seemed the safest, though she had to hop over a middle-aged man rolling by on the floor. "Hello," she greeted once near her destination. "May we sit with you?"

Curious eyes turned her way and brightened at once. "Of course!" the blonde agreed. "Feel free! You don't mind, do you, Precht?"

"Not at all," the elder returned with a huff. His indulgent smile could not be missed, though. Wendy slid onto the free bench opposite to them, soon joined by her disillusioned friends. Precht glanced between the three before focussing on Wendy again. "It is their first time here, is it not?"

"Indeed."

"Heh. And you didn't warn them. At all." The girl giggled while Wendy whistled innocently. Then she introduced herself: "Welcome back, Wendy. I'm Mavis. Who are your friends?"

She hesitated for a moment, trying to remember if she ever met this girl before. Maybe in passing during the tournament? Either way, she indulged Mavis and motioned for her friends: "These are Flare and Yukino. Master Priscilla may have mentioned us."

"Watch out!"

"She did indeed," the elder commented idly. He threw a sharp look and gesture toward Macao, aborting his ballistic course their way right back into the crowd. Wendy barely felt any magic and the man immediately rose in her esteem. For some reason though, his eyes were focussed on the Dragonslayer. "I hear you dance."

"That is true, although my dance is unlike any you ever beheld, sir."

He chuckled at that, forcing Wendy to quell her temper. Before either of them could continue, rainbow colours shrouded the entire table. A butterfly of pure aquamarine danced in front of her face, warping into flying lines of green and red. Purple roses rose between them, bands of silver connecting everyone together. Wendy felt the Ethernano exuding from Mavis, who giggled and patted her suspiciously bloated belly. Her friends were too mesmerised by the display to notice.

"He is not even born yet, but he already comes right after his father," Mavis chirped. Now that Wendy knew, she could finally place the odd addition to her scent. Most of it was covered by their surroundings, though. "I guess he wants everyone to get along, too." So saying, Mavis flicked out her fingers. Vermillion spell circles flared into existence, immediately blasting the brawl with enough water to interrupt it. "Playtime is over!"

Much to even her surprise, all this earned was some grumbling. Most of them were already laughing and clapping each other on the back. Some righted the furniture, others carried away what broke. A barmaid swooped by Wendy's table right after, sporting a black eye and a beaming smile. Mavis received an expansive meal she immediately began to destroy. Carla made a comment about propriety that was summarily ignored.

Others came by to greet her next, as well as her friends. Fairy Tail's earnest friendliness soon had both drawn into conversations. Little Romeo, Macao's seven-year-old son, soon introduced Flare to his fire magic teacher. A man called Totomaru, who was more than a little intrigued by her flaming hair. Yukino was talking to Elfman, now clad in white robes but still bereft of an arm.

"Ah, at last."

And there was Priscilla herself. Her entry went barely even acknowledged by the guild, not that she seemed to care. The giantess inclined her head toward Wendy, who greeted her back in the same manner. Then she passed a number of books and clipped parchments to Flare. "I did some research and while I could recommend tutors for fire magic, you seem to be in good hands already." Totomaru chuckled as Priscilla favoured him with a smile, clearly flustered. Then the crossbreed continued toward Flare: "But hair magic is far less common, so I took the liberty to gather a few instructional tomes and excerpts for you. I added a list for the recommended order to read through them, too."

"Oh?" Mavis impishly snatched the topmost page with telekinesis of her own, studying it. Her brows rose as she grabbed the second, too. "Is that what I think it is?"

"Only the best for a friend," Priscilla agreed, but neither explained. As far as Wendy could see, these excerpts lay topmost. Now she was curious what they said.

Before she could act on her curiousity, Precht rose from the bench. "You dance," he repeated, offering a firm hand. "would you care to dance with me, then?"

Wendy stared at the proffered limb, then at him. "My dance is unlike any you ever beheld," she repeated, but he was undeterred. "Alas, if you wish for the exotic, you shall have it." And eat his laughter about her claims. She took his hand and was pulled up.

The crowd parted as the dissimilar pair stepped away from Mavis. All eyes were on them, her previous performance clearly remembered. Precht grinned, shaking out his arms and legs to warm up. "Ah, to dance again," he mused, "it has been a while. Be warned though, Wendy Marvell. I am the one who dances with magic and I have done so since long before you were born."

"That, I doubt."

Some startled laughter followed her quip, but nobody seemed aware of the actual truth. Wendy took a deep breath and loosened herself up, then bent at the waist to bow. Precht did the same without prompt, much to her surprise. Then they began, almost as one.

Wendy no longer focussed on him the moment she twirled. Her soul sung as it spread outward, coralling the air in gentle waves. Wind spread from her, a soft breeze that enveloped the room. Her steps were secure, her posture eternal. Then she faltered mid-step as Ethernano bloomed in front of her. Precht matched her motions, surrounded by streamers of light that followed. All the elements bar her winds were made his, dancing along. The earth throbbed with each step, the light flickered along his limbs. Trails of water turned to steam as they mixed with flame, expanding outward.

Her eyes widened. All that kept her from stumbling was his satisfied, almost arrogant grin. Growing competetive, Wendy sped up her motions. For the first time she acknowledged him, if grudging. Her winds caressed the other elements, gently carrying them along in a gleaming river. Hundreds of stars were born and died within heartbeats.

Nothing existed anymore, only she and him. Wendy let her unheard song pour forward, only to find another answer. A melody so unlike her own, unlike Quelaan's. Old yet strong, supple still despite countless failings. Not eternal, nowhere close, but oh so human. Ancient in his own way. He allowed her to lead, following Wendy's motions until her hand landed in his; when he pulled to twirl her across the air, she followed. Her feet left the ground yet found purchase on a road of light, from where she descended gently. She remained in place, staring at him as her chest rose heavily.

The elements slowly quieted, their dance at an end. Precht nodded, his respect of her grown just like Wendy's had of him. He bowed again and this time, she curtsied in response.

Then they were drowned in uproarious applause. The entire guild cheered, including Priscilla. Wendy could not help but smile, pride satisfied. She had grown more proficient of late and it showed.

Just as the clapping subsided however, a noise like a thunderclap cut through it. Then again, and again, each time one of the hooded people clapped her hands. She rose, easily collecting the entire room's attention. Golden chains clacked softly as she moved, face hidden. Precht gasped ever so softly, inaudible to all but Wendy's sharp ears.

"Most impressive," the woman praised in a curt alto. Wendy was about to get annoyed again, but what followed left her stumped: "I expected as much of my own student. Thou however, who taught thee?"

She blinked at the figure, dumbfounded like the rest of the guild. Instead of answering the question, Wendy asked one of her own: "Who art thou?"

A soft huff sounded, then the woman raised both hands to pull back her hood. She revealed deep, red tresses framing a face she knew too well. Though Quelaan was chalk white in skin and hair, their regal features were too similar to be a coincidence. A faint scent of smoke wafted from the woman, her strict expression softened by a faint smirk. At least until it faded. "Quelana of Izalith is who I am. Now answer, child."

Her throat was dry all of a sudden. Quelana, that name she knew. Quelaan sometimes spoke of her sisters and brother. Wendy never expected to meet any of them.

Thankfully, or perhaps unfortunately, she was saved from stammering by a palpable pressure engulfing the room. Priscilla all but glared at the witch, clearly fighting for composure. Quelana's attention switched fluidly and sparks flew from her body as she resisted. "And indeed, my companion told no tall tales. An Everlasting dragon, in our form no less." More sparks flew, though her expression and voice remained curt. "How do you do?"

The pressure faded again and Wendy could breathe. Priscilla rubbed her temples before reluctantly inclining her head. "As can be expected under these circumstances. Keep thy flames away from this hall and we shall have an accord."

"That is acceptable. I meant no offense, this once."

"So I noticed," Priscilla quipped drily. "Thou hath been a frequent visitor for many months. And thy companions?" she followed up with a clear inquiry, to which Quelana arched an eyebrow.

"I believe I asked a question first. You would know as well, I believe? Who taught this child the art of pyromancy?"

Priscilla was about to respond, but then she threw a calculating look to Wendy. The older dragon motioned for her and she understood at once; even as one just aspiring to become Everlasting, kin-to-be would not speak in her stead. Nodding, she firmed up and answered: "Quelaan of Izalith, my caretaker. Although from her recountings, I gathered only she and Quelaag escaped the inferno?"

She had Quelana's undivided attention the moment her sister's name fell. For the first time her composure broke to display naked shock. The witch slowly forced her countenance back under control with a faint nod, grasping Wendy's chin to examine her up close. "They would not know, of course. I thought much the same of my own survival, having travelled at the time Chaos was born. What of Quelaag, then? Did she make her way to this realm as well?"

Wendy shook her head, though the gesture could not dislodge those calloused fingers. "I was told that Quelaag's daily visits ceased months before Quelaan arrived here. We expect the worst."

"I see."

Though not quite the same, Wendy could almost taste the ash those two words must taste like. Quelana let go at last, studying her thoughtfully. "Thou art yet young," she judged. "Thy dance is not developed fully, but thy potential is great. Do continue thy studies. And if she will see me, well. Apologies need to be made."

"Of course," Wendy returned with a faint smile. She understood well enough. "I shall inform her the moment I return."

"I'm confused," Yukino chimed in. Her sentiment seemed to be echoed by most of the guild watching their exchange. "That's too many similar names. And isn't Quelaan a spider something? How's, I mean, this?" She vaguely motioned for the very much human Quelana, whose brows had risen. An inquisitive gaze went Wendy's way, who shrugged.

"As I was told," Priscilla added curtly from their other side, "Quelaag and Quelaan of Izalith barely escaped the inferno alive. Their close proximity to newborn Chaos saw them mutated heavily. That is all I know of the matter; I doubt she would speak much of these circumstances to a child."

Wendy hated very much that the guild master was right. Her frown went ignored, though; Quelana nodded. "Indeed. Should we meet, I shall ask of her." She pulled her hood back up, once more hiding her face in shadow. A miniscule shift of her cowl reminded Wendy of the other two she arrived with. "Now, I am afraid I gave us away."

"It had to happen eventually," another female voice answered. The masked woman rose to join them. She was clad in black armour with dark blue regalia, not a single strip of skin visible. The person in red followed as well, though Wendy quickly noticed how limp one side of her robe hung. Moreover, a faintly familiar scent hit her nose as that one closed in.

Quelana huffed and turned back to Priscilla. "Dusk, formerly of Oolacile, prefers her solitude. Which is why thou saw her join us three rarely." Precht suddenly looked far more morose. "With me today stands Ciaran, formerly Lord's Blade."

The masked woman took the pause to mimic a shallow bow toward Priscilla, who bristled. "I never expected to lay eyes on thee once again," she greeted calmly. "Yet here we stand."

"Pardon," Wendy interrupted with a faint tilt of her head. "Who art thou?"

Ciaran stared at her for a long moment... and began to chuckle. Hearty laughter filled the otherwise empty hall for precious seconds. She stopped before Wendy could more than scowl, though. "Ah, how refreshing," Ciaran sighed. "Precious obscurity. I once served as knight of Lord Gwyn, young one. Never did I expect to so enjoy going unrecognised."

"May I assume thy presence in the open is a declaration of intent?" Priscilla ground out, hissing the "Lord's Blade" like an insult. Ciaran turned back to her instantly; Wendy noticed the aborted grab for her two scabbards, as did most everyone else.

"Thou may, abomination," she retorted. The guild gasped in surprise, but Priscilla's frown did not visibly change.

Then the third figure chopped the back of Ciaran's head. A loud clank took all tension from the room as the erstwhile knight stumbled forward. Her glare could not be seen but clearly felt, but the figure in red remained unaffected. "Enough of this posturing," she chided. Her voice was familiar too, but Wendy could not quite put it. Going by the confusion surrounding them, she was not the only one who recognised this from somewhere.

"You are one to talk. It was you who insisted on disguises to begin with."

"I told you before why it was necessary," the other woman retorted. Then she turned to Priscilla with a sigh, and pulled back her hood with one hand.

Beneath it lay a face Wendy knew, paler than she remembered. It was no longer youthful, marred by wrinkles. Her scarlet hair had been shortened and bound into a tight bun, sporting first streaks of grey. A gasp went around the room as Erza Scarlet revealed herself to the shocked Priscilla. "It has been twenty years," she announced gravely, though with a smile. "I have returned, everyone."

She was immediately mobbed by the entire guild. Wendy and her team were swept aside by the surge of people going for hugs and confused questions. Erza indulged them. Soon enough however, the odd procession was interrupted when Priscilla reached for her. The knightess was drawn into a bone-breaking embrace, too far from anyone else to join. Quelana huffed at the sight while Ciaran gave no visible sign of her thoughts.

"You were in Lordran," the older dragon stated. It was not a question, the conclusion clear as day from Erza's company. "Has it truly been twenty years?"

"Yes." If she was bothered by being off the ground, she gave no indication of it. "We actually returned a few weeks before the Fantasia Tournament, but I was cautioned against changing events. From how Ciaran and Dusk told me, people who met themselves ended up with grisly fates of some sort."

"And after the events on your island, our dear friend became skittish," Quelana added nonchalantly. Erza threw a glare her way, but she was unmoved. "As we can all attest, such worries were unfounded."

Priscilla snorted. "Obviously." Then she bopped Erza on the head with one finger. "You should at least have approached myself or Makarov. But it does not matter now. Welcome home."

When she finished the greeting with another big hug, half the guild jumped in and toppled Priscilla to the ground. She did not seem to care, somehow cushioning her fall so it did not break the floor. Wendy awkwardly stepped back to engage Quelana in conversation instead.

As the three women explained, Erza saved the realm of Oolacile just after her arrival. No one elaborated what from, though. She then journeyed across Lordran with Dusk and Ciaran by her side to find a way home. It took twenty years to accumulate the knowledge and expertise necessary. They picked up Quelana in a swamp along the way; first she was merely intrigued by their odd little group; then Erza went ahead and put the restless husk of her mother, the Witch of Izalith, to rest with Ciaran's aid. No one went into detail what this meant either, but thinking of Quelaan and what she heard about mutations, Wendy could guess.

Everything became less hectic afterward.

Except for Mavis, whose time approached swiftly. She mused idly, trying to distract herself from the pain. One direct consequence followed for the guild: Erza had enough fighting for more than one lifetime. She resigned from active duty, effective immediately. No one blamed her for it, though this put a serious dent in Fairy Tail's combat prowess. She would raise her blade in their defense, though. A single arm did little to deter Erza Scarlet. For now she rather settled down and began to tutor others in combat as well as magic.

Another contraction cut off that train of thought. Mavis was dragged back to the present and pushed as she was told. Then followed, finally, relief. She lay there panting, spent, as a piercing wail cut the silence.

"Congratulations," Polyushka grumbled. "It's a boy."

It was early May now, two months since the day Erza returned to them. Today was the day Mavis held her son for the first time. He had been suspended in stasis with the rest of her body for so long, now he was born. Tears silently flowed down her cheeks as she cradled him ever so careful. He was so small, so fragile, and he was hers. Hours passed in a daze; Mavis was in labour for a while and left alone to recover. She spent all this time watching her sleeping baby with a brittle smile.

"If only you could have met him," she mouthed. Not even whispered, as her throat was parched. A flick of Ethernano sent the glass on her bedside table flying to her lips. Then she pressed a damp kiss to their child's forehead. "I will name him August, after the month we first met."

She received no answer, not that one was expected.

The guild immediately fell in love with August; for the first time in years, goings-on inside were calm and quiet so as to not disturb him. Not a single soul stepped out of line. Within two weeks, he cheerfully threw sparks around. Mavis watched with pride how he replicated little tricks her guildmates amused him with in a matter of hours. He would be sick from the overabundance of Ethernano, yes, but for now her baby laughed.

Deep down she still ached, but she could smile nonetheless. He had his father's dark eyes and the same sunny disposition.

Had she known of the years to come, that knowledge would have strangled her hope for a brighter future in their crib.
 
7.1 Approaching Darkness
"My Etherious were made to kill the unkillable. A sad consequence is that they are therefore born far more powerful than the average wizard."

-excerpt from "Lost Knowledge - Brightest Light and Darkest Dark"

Kyoka was still uncertain how it all came to be.

Following the faint urging of E.N.D.'s tome, she slowly traversed Ishgar. Country by country she passed over months, led ever further south. Sometimes she met people, hiding her inhuman legs under self-tanned hide. They all appreciated her free use of healing, removing scars and returning lost limbs wherever. She was given shelter, provisions, and heartfelt gratitude. Through it all though, she did not feel much. The sense of fulfillment Kyoka hoped for remained amiss. But the book was proud of her, at least.

Only upon returning to Fiore did this change. Not for herself exactly, but because a man spoke to her. Even now, years later, he never said what made him speak up that fateful day. She still did not know why she accepted his invitation to his guild. Perhaps she simply had no reason to refuse. Ever since reaching the southmost kingdom, E.N.D.'s tome fell silent. He seemed content to let her find her own path from here, so she did.

"The job is done, Master."

"Ah, wonderful, wonderful! As reliable as always, my sweet Kyoka!"

A meaty hand ruffled her hair, eliciting a twang of joy. She allowed it and leaned into his touch. Some people chuckled, but she paid no mind to their mirth. No one here wished her ill, least of all Master Bob. Then again, she doubted anyone made the connection that she was not human; her avian legs and feet were likely attributed to the uncommon magical mutations some people developed over time.

Nonetheless, Bob's praise brightened her world for a little time. He knew what she was after she confessed it to him the previous year, but accepted her regardless.

"Sit down, sit down," he urged with a big grin on his pudgy cheeks. "Tell us all about it. I'm sure Jenny wants to know, too."

"Absolutely," the starlet agreed. She stood out even among the well put-together crowd of suits and dresses in their guildhall; blonde, curvy, and clad in a lavender gown that accentuated her figure even further. When Mirajane vanished two years back, the Weekly Sorceror sought a new star model; in Jenny they found it, barely eighteen at the time. Now she was all but attached to Kyoka for reasons the Etherious just could not fathom. She reminded her a bit of Seilah. The comparison still hurt.

She let herself be dragged into a recounting of her mission anyway. Blue Pegasus mostly offered jobs in infrastructure and support of businesses, with a smattering of hunting and combat missions. Kyoka mainly grabbed whatever brought her out into the lands, far away from anyone who might recognise her. Her desire for privacy was noticed and so she became a bit of an open secret among her guild. No reporters would be pointed her way, ever. She was grateful for their consideration.

As she told the tale of her hunt after a pair of Vulcans, Kyoka once again felt her energy flag. She did not want to be around people anymore, merely curl up in her small bed and sleep. But with Jenny hanging on her lips, she forced herself to keep going for a while.

Once the guild's curiousity was sated, she left for home and lost her way. Her thoughts were wandering much like Kyoka herself. The novelty of being a guild wizard had since worn off, leaving her to feel like something was amiss. Then again, perhaps this was just her life. Ren suggested picking up another hobby when she brought it up in the past. Bob agreed with him then, fiddling with the scarf Kyoka knitted for him. Her first attempt at such a thing as leisure activities. She improved quite a bit since then.

She still wondered about that. Missions began to tire on her, but money was money. What else could she do when just about anything she attempted failed to appeal?

Kyoka resurfaced from her musings without an answer. She felt empty still. Then she realised she left town, finding herself near a desolate farm. It was struck by a wild beast half a year ago, one that she cleared out. Unfortunately, it already killed the owner by then. The place lay barren until someone bought it. She heard that the soil was no good and the price kept dropping.

Sitting down on a large log, she let her gaze wander the abandoned area. It felt strangely sympathetic, a place that resembled her. Shaking off the thought, Kyoka began to ponder again. Just what kind of activity did she like beside knitting? In the past she tormented humans for entertainment, but she also read the occasional book.

Recent rain brought a few worms to the surface. Kyoka absently snatched two and began to mutate them out of old habit. Her other hand stroked the warm tome now spread over her lap. Then she paused, staring down at the bright red creature in her hand. Its still pink companion wound around her claws in a bid to escape.

People bred animals, did they not? To produce goods, for competition, the like. Now here she was, able to freely manipulate the biology of a creature. She could become a breeder, perhaps? Maybe sheep, what with her plan to dabble with sewing? What other animals produced wool? Or rather, did she have to care when she could give any critter wool to begin with?

For some reason, wool did not appeal. Not quite. She could grow cotton too, without any animals. But neither really fit her guild, whom she idly fantasized of supporting with self-made clothes.

Then it hit her: silk.

Even if she lacked the skill to make fine garments, she could absolutely provide raw materials to actual tailours. Her expression grew brighter as plans were made. A tiny flame of passion once again kept her going. She willed herself past the everlasting exhaustion and to work. Research needed to be done. Carefully returning the worms to normal, she set both back down and turned around to walk back.

Meanwhile, her guild master had greater issues to contend with. Thanks to recent developments in magical technology, he could call his fellow masters via Lacrima when needed. A revolutionary design by Precht Gaebolg, based on the experimental tech Blue Pegasus originally funded. Once refinement lowered the costs, they expected such a station to enter every household across the country.

Today he stared at a handful of screens, each depicting a different yet familiar face. All the major guilds were in this conversation and no one was happy.

"You are certain it is Tartaros?" Priscilla was asking next. Quatro Cerberus' Goldmine nodded gravely.

"Aye. Another village of six hundred souls, gone."

Some quiet cursing sounded from Lamia Scale's Ooba and Sabertooth's Jiemma, but no one called them on it. Goldmine grimaced. "It's been a gods damned year since they started doing that. Do you want the good news or the bad news first? Kidding," he continued before anyone could respond, "it's all bad news: we got some intel out of them before they went for the kill. Tartaros is looking for a traitor and they will keep going with these atrocities until they found that traitor."

That was indeed bad news. Bob was lost in thought, only paying token attention to the conversation and discussion. He already knew that Tartaros rampaged without rhyme or reason. He, however, had an Etherious among his guild. Yet the memory of a bashful Kyoka getting her head pat and leaning into his touch deterred him from speaking up. And really, what were the odds it was actually her? She hardly had it in her to betray anyone.

"Looks like terror tactics to me," Goldmine was saying when Bob's attention returned to the conversation. "Whoever shelters that traitor is scared into booting them out."

He nodded along. "Ah yes, that makes sense, my dear. But Ishgar is vast and Tartaros never spreads far. Do they really think they can find their traitor like this?"

His question quieted the group momentarily. No one quite knew, at least until Priscilla's creased brow smoothed out. "Now I get it," she announced. "That is why they never remain stationary and leave significant gaps between attacks. Driving up fear, having the message pass around. They want whoever they seek to know, and they want everyone to know what they are after. Even if a country has never received a visit, they will shudder once that floating base appears. Sooner or later they will find someone who knows something, then they will truly hunt."

Somber silence follwed her musings. Bob could see the logic in her words, not that it appealed to him. The mere thought of such a fate befalling Fiore creeped him out.

Then Sabertooth's Jiemma snorted. "They stay far away from us," he drawled. "The guilds here are strong and not as easily beaten as whoever they went after so far."

"Hah!" Ooba crowed, cackling. "That's the most arrogant sentence I heard this year!"

And considering it was late October, this certainly meant something. Jiemma bristled as expected, far too prideful. Bob jumped in to smooth things over before they started arguing: "There is in fact someone in Fiore that Tartaros fears. Unfortunately for all of us, it is only a matter of time until they find out she isn't here."

The others quieted to mull it over; much as he expected, Priscilla understood first. "Ah. Mirajane." He nodded back.

"How do you know that?" Jiemma inquired, to which he squirmed momentarily. Technically, Kyoka told him how afraid Etherious were of the She-Devil. But ever since he learned that fact, it felt so obvious. Hindsight was twenty-twenty after all.

What he said was more of a deflection: "She is well known for absorbing demons and taking their powers. Tartaros is, as far as we know, all demons. It just makes sense that her reputation is what keeps them away."

He received muttered agreements from the other masters and the subject was dropped. Priscilla still pondered, however.

"The question is: how do we carry on now? Tartaros will eventually come to Fiore. Not to mention the many people who will die along the way. I do not fear them, but the devastation they can bring is... considerable."

She was right and they all knew it, but there was little they could do. Tartaros was active on the other side of Ishgar at the moment. They could not help people that far away. After some back-and-forth, the guilds agreed on a wait-and-see approach to the issue. They would keep their eyes and ears open, prepare for the case of an attack, and hope Tartaros kept their distance until Mirajane returned. An offensive became far more feasible with the one person they feared at hand.

While the guild masters concluded their conversation, Wendy faced her own little council. She faintly stared down at a chocolate cake sporting sixteen candles, then back up at Yukino and Flare. Solano's grin was easily brighter than both of theirs, even though she was just chaperoning them.

"Happy Birthday," Flare congratulated kindly. Yukino echoed her a moment later, smoothing out her white dress. Wendy still did not know if it was their teammate or her sister that inspired the change, but the former punk's edges had been smoothed away over the years. She smiled openly now.

"I told you this was unnecessary," she deflected once again, bashful. It still made her happy and she quickly embraced both of her friends. Then, after a moment of hesitation, she did the same with Solano. "Thank you."

The older woman's chuckle was more felt than heard. She gently patted Wendy's head before letting her go with a silly grin. "You haven't seen the best part yet. We put our heads together to find you a nice present. Bring it in, girls."

Her order was followed and Wendy's teammates quickly brought in a big box. It was wrapped in aquamarine and sported a pink bow that all but dissolved when pulled. A shower of sparks flew into her face the moment she took off the lid, obscuring Wendy's vision. She blinked a few times to clear it, then gaped at what was inside. No useless trinkets to put on her nightstand like last year, no. Quite the opposite. What greeted her was the sight of clothes, all but wafting with the scent of magic. Fine runes were stitched along the seams, glittering gently.

Wendy reached inside and reverently pulled out a tank top similar to what Yukino used to wear. It was light pink, almost white. Next came a sturdy vest as blue as the brightest sky, then black shorts that would barely reach her knees. And lastly, a pair of sturdy, dark-brown leather boots with plain white kneesocks. Every single item was enchanted as heavily as humanly possible.

"This must have cost a fortune," Wendy mumbled. She was awestruck, letting the fine cotton run through her fingers. The vest was silk, though. She paused. "Quelaan was involved in this, no?"

"A lot of people were," Yukino admitted cheerfully. "Quelaan, Quelana, Erza, Priscilla, sis, her friends. And hey, lookie here." She pointed out a string of alien orange on the soles of her boots. "Even Kalameet helped out. After a lot of convincing."

She snorted at that, well aware how he could be. Although the black dragon's interest in humans and their affairs grew recently, from complete indifference to a faint curiousity. Examining whatever he did to her boots, she quickly found she had no idea. "What do all these enchantments do?"

"Let's see. There should be..." Flare reached into the box and rummaged around. Then she paused, fidgeted, and drew out three more items. First a set of matching undergarments Wendy missed and knew were Yukino's idea the moment she saw them, then a sheet of parchment. Flare quickly passed it all to her. "Here, we put it all on a list."

Had Solano not also been present, Wendy would have taken the challenge and changed right in front of them. As it were, she disregarded the idea and perused this list. What immediately stood out were the self-cleaning and self-repair enchantments, ensuring she would not need to replace these clothes for a long time. Then there were eleven different defensive charms, mainly elemental, followed by passive Body Enhancement. As it turned out, Kalameet's addition would keep her feet steady on any surface, even vertical ones. There was more still, a positively obscene number.

Shaking her head, Wendy put down the list.

"You are insane. I am grateful, but you are insane."

The Agria sisters laughed openly in response while Flare inclined her head. Wendy hugged them all again. Then she turned around, took a deep breath, and blew out all sixteen candles on the cake Flare baked for her. "Now we should join everyone else below. I believe I owe a few more hugs."

"Sure thing. Think we can get Kalameet to eat a slice?"

The mental image Yukino's comment conjured up had Wendy giggling all the way down the stairs. She greatly enjoyed her birthday party that day. An actual party even, not the quiet, restful days Quelaan thought of as a celebration. Not that they used to know enough people or have the funds for anything extravagant.

The next day she immediately put her new outfit to use and took her team exploring beneath Crocus. The catacombs were still interesting and unexplored in parts.

Unfortunately, Yukino did not share her enthusiasm anymore. "We can just go on missions," she complained, "there's nothing down here we haven't seen yet."

"This is a calm spot to practice, though," Flare offered diplomatically. She had a point as well, though Yukino shook her head in response.

Before they could continue bantering, Wendy's head snapped around. She stopped suddenly, making the white-haired woman bump into her. A surprised exclamation went ignored; she absently pushed Yukino away and sniffed the air, brow creased. A familiar scent wafted along that inconspicuous sidepath. Too weak to be recognisable, except for the animal part of Wendy's mind. She was certain she smelled this before.

"I believe," she quipped softly, "that you will get your diversity in a moment."

Then she led the way down that path, ignoring questions. The trail went through several winding corridors, likely meant to confuse explorers with how often they split. Wendy's nose made short work of it. Yukino grumbled as she set quick lines on her map, long shadows cast over her pretty face by Flare's gleam.

The grumbling stopped once they turned the final corner and entered a veritable cavern. The three friends halted in their steps, staring at the contraption they found: a gate of sorts, sporting twelve keyholes evenly spaced around its frame. Various apparatuses were attached to the massive structure, easily large enough to cover the far wall. Ethernano was thin here, too. Wendy spotted no less than two dozen humongous Lacrima, six of them filled to the brim with magical power. The steel was stainless, looking as good as new. In fact, it was not steel at all.

"Wow," Flare whispered reverently. Though quiet, her voice echoed until Wendy forced the air under her control. She would only get annoyed if this kept happening.

"What is this?" Yukino said next. No one had an answer for her and a cursory search revealed nothing. No instructions, no inscriptions. Whatever had once surrounded this imposing structure, it was no more.

Wendy considered dragging Kalameet here to inspect this, but he would refuse unless she gave him a good reason. Idle curiousity was not one. She sniffed again, trying to place the scent and failing. It was familiar as well as ethereal in some aspects. Almost... other? And those were keyholes, twelve of them. An idea began to form in her mind, even if it was a long shot.

"Yukino? Could you call for Aries?"

"What? Why?"

"Just a hunch."

"Okay? One sec."

The ram's gate cast golden light upon the entire area. For a moment Wendy thought she saw the large gate flash in response. It was gone before she could say for certain. Then Aries joined them with her customary smile. Yukino received a big hug in greeting, then Wendy and Flare did as well.

"What can I do... for... you."

Aries had begun upbeat, but the looming gate's sight made her trail off slowly. "Oh my."

"So you know what this is?" Wendy inquired. "Are those keyholes for the Zodiac keys?"

Aries' hesitation was answer enough. She knew it too, going by how her shoulders fell. Yukino wrapped an arm around her with a winning smile. "Now don't make a face, it's all good. Even if this thingy is bad news, it's not doing anything. So what is it? C'mon, tell us!"

"I would rather not."

"Aww, pretty please?"

A valiant if futile attempt at puppy dog eyes did not sway Aries. The pinkette faintly shook her head. Tears brimmed in the corners of her eyes. "Please don't ask. If anything, it would be best to leave this contraption alone forever. It will not open unless all twelve zodiac keys are inserted. Its purpose is fulfilled. You would be better off forgetting it even exists."

Wendy heard her words, but the plea did not deter her. She could not forget anymore, even if she wanted to. Aries' tears gave her pause, yes, but her mind kept on rattling through possibilities. There were ultimately too many to make any conclusions, however. "Who built this?"

Aries met her gaze, finding only honest curiousity. After receiving the same from Yukino and Flare, she began to fidget. The key in Yukino's hand gleamed momentarily as the spirit considered fleeing their pleading looks. Then she slumped. "A dear friend of the celestial court. You call him the Black Wizard. Zeref."

Wendy hissed in surprise. Flare's eyes widened. And Yukino's "What?" echoed even through Wendy's control of the air.

"What do you mean, Zeref? How is the worst guy in history your friend?! You can't-"

Yukino was cut off by one of the few things none of them had ever expected to see. Aries fixed her with a sour look. When her summoner's mouth opened and closed soundlessly, she stepped forward. Two gentle hands took a hold of Yukino's cheeks, forcing her to look Aries in the eyes. "Zeref. Is. My. Friend." She repeated slowly. "My contract with him was never broken. All twelve zodiacs were contracted with him. He is the only one beside Lucy Heartfilia to step before the Starlit Throne since dragons ruled these lands. Only him. He forged the key in your hand and he forged this gate for his final quest. Do not speak of him as if you know him, Yukino. Zeref was a kind man and I, hic, I miss him terribly."

The tears began to flow somewhere during her tirade. Then Aries sobbed and collapsed into Yukino's arms. The bewildered woman comforted her anyway, soon joined by her friends. None of them knew how to treat this development. The Black Wizard was involved in this, whatever this was. Aries would not speak of the matter anymore, forcefully closing the gate when Yukino tried to poke her again.

In the end, the three of them decided to trust the ram. Whatever this gate was, its purpose was already fulfilled. And if nothing else, the Zodiac keys were incredible things, so maybe Zeref really was not as bad as people thought? Not that Wendy was dumb enough to say that where anyone else could hear. All of this was their little secret from that day forward. Not a soul learned of the device, or of the origin of gate keys.

Priscilla, who already knew of all but Eclipse's position, would not have been bothered either way. As it were, she remained unaware. She continued her studies and duties without pause beyond the occasional day spent strolling around Magnolia. A habit she got from Makarov, who took time to interact with the people of Fairy Tail's hometown every once in a while.

October passed in favour of November when another visit from Wendy's team reminded her of Flare. Flare in turn reminded her of Sun Village and Atlas Flame. The last time they met, she barely knew anything of Earthland. So after clearing her schedule once again, Priscilla readied herself to teleport there for some catching up. No one but Mavis even knew where she went, the erstwhile master now effectively her right hand.

Priscilla vanished the moment her spell completed. It felt like her initial journey to Earthland, only that she controlled her fall through the tunnel. She needed but a few seconds to reach her destination.

The moment she arrived, Priscilla's thought processes ground to a screeching halt. What lay before her did not quite want to be processed.

The grand walls were torn down, all but turned to rubble. Bountiful fields had been ravaged and burned. Buildings collapsed, turning entire streets into blockades. And across it all lay the corpses of giants, rivers of spotty crimson flowing from their wounds. Only the buzzing of flies held the deathly quiet at bay. Above it all hung a fog of mourning, the lament of Atlas Flame.

Priscilla thoughtlessly approached the nearest body, larger than her even with its lower half amiss. The man's face was forever marred by a vicious snarl. She ran a finger over his skin, only to find it cold. Whoever did this, it was not recent. Several days ago, most likely. A likely suspect already came to mind; anger began to bubble with that thought.

Turning abruptly, Priscilla marched into town. No one hailed her at the gate, no gentle giants bent down to engage her. The acute sense of wrong only fuelled her wrath. Angry glares popped the insects feasting on their cadavers. Within moments there was true silence. She disrupted it right after by willing the street free. Rubble shifted, grinding against itself before bowling over a half-standing building. It collapsed away from her. Priscilla's march continued, right toward the amphitheatre where the Great Flame rested. Still bodies greeted her wherever she went, some barely taller than her.

By the time she arrived, the pressure of her own presence had already focussed Atlas Flame. His burning gaze found hers immediately. His heat vaporised the tears blurring her vision.

"Who?" Priscilla ground out, wrath fluttering on her voice. Some of the nearby plants that survived so far withered away. Atlas Flame growled right back.

"Demons," he spat, confirming the greater dragon's earlier suspicion. "They asked no questions, made no demands. They came and they killed until no one was left. My children fought back and took down a few, but they were found wanting when their leader and elite took the field."

The dragon's spirit slumped, then flinched away from Priscilla's eruption. Stone turned to dust beneath her feet and left her floating, gravity itself too scared to try affecting her. She was apoplectic now, her every fibre brimming with god-killing might. She would find them and exterminate them like the wretched vermin they were!

A voice sundered her daydreams of disproportionate retribution, still mighty yet oh so small: "Perhaps it is time to fade at last. I lay amidst the ashes of all I yearned to protect. All gone, now."

Atlas Flame pawed at the remains of one of his sentinels, felled right next to the pedestal his own body rested on. His woe returned a spark of sanity to Priscilla, who slowly began to fight for composure. She approached the other dragon and hugged him.

"Tis not your fault," she murmured, clouds of vapour rising from her eyes. Atlas Flame was too bewildered to respond; his attempts to figure out how she remained pristine while forcing fire into solid form to hug remained fruitless. By the time Priscilla let go of him, her composure was merely cracked instead of gone. She gently cradled his head against her chest. "And thou art wrong as well. Flare yet lives. Within her, all of Sun Village remains."

He huffed weakly, a puff of glimmering air. "Indeed. And yet." A slight shift told her he was gazing at the devastation still.

"Shall I move your body to Fiore?"

"No. This is where I was once put to rest and this is where I belong." A heavy sigh followed, shaking even Priscilla. "But if I may ask a favour? I can not move the bodies for their last rites."

"I understand," she answered and let go. Her smile turned watery again. "Of course I will help. But before that I need to inform Flare. It will break her heart, but she deserves to know. Perhaps being present will give her some sort of peace."

"A fine idea. I only hope her star will not fall from this, so soon after its rise began."

She nodded mutely and began to flit around the place. As inappropriate as it felt to rush, time was of the essence. She gathered all the bodies and covered them up to protect from further parasites. Collapsed buildings and other rubble dutifully jumped aside to reveal some of them when she passed, ensuring not a single one was missed.

Then, with an exertion of will, she almost tore a hole into space on the leap back to Crocus. Instead of arriving outside of the fence to be polite, Priscilla materialised in the middle of that cave she remembered. No sound announced her, making Quelaan of Izalith flinch back moments later. Kalameet eyed her stony countenance and swirling power, climbing to his feet.

"Is it time to slay a kinslayer?" he asked, but Priscilla shook her head.

"Not yet, no. Other matters require my attention. I seek Flare Corona, has either of you seen her of late?"

"Um."

Priscilla turned around to find who she was looking for. Wendy and Yukino were present as well, as inconvenient as it was right now. Only when all three retreated from her did the dragon realise she was still putting too much pressure on her surroundings. "Apologies," she murmured, reining in her raging emotions some more.

Flare hesitantly stepped forward, hands clasped in front of her chest. "Did something happen? You're crying, and, is everything okay? Is Mavis okay?"

"Tis not about Mavis. I..." She trailed off, wiping tears from her eyes. With a last effort, Priscilla willed herself back under control. Now was not the time. She could grieve after delivering the bad news. Taking a deep breath and firming up, she met Flare's gaze evenly. "I just returned from Sun Village. The entire village was destroyed... I am so sorry."

"W-What?"

Flare stared up at her, uncomprehending. Priscilla ignored everyone else in favour of her, and so she was able to see the news register. Minute twitches in her expression, errant sparks of flame from her hair. The first glint of tears, arms falling slack. It was at this point Wendy glomped the poor girl, whose composure broke like brittle wood in a storm. She slumped into her friend's embrace and cried quietly; Yukino joined them moments later.

Priscilla gave them space and sunk herself in thought. The anger was still there, bubbling right beneath the surface. Acknowledging the need to do something about it later, she pondered her next steps. How long exactly it took for Flare to gather her wits, she did not know. Once she had, Priscilla knelt before her.

"Again, my heartfelt condolences. I came right this way once I learned of what happened," she explained. Flare just stared, nodding faintly. Priscille tried to sound as gentle as possible, uncertain how well it worked. "Do you wish to witness their last rites?"

Another nod, slightly more hesitant. Priscilla gently stroked the far smaller woman's head with her thumb. Flare still flashed heat. "I need to prepare first. Please dress according to your home's customs, I will pick you up in about two hours."

"Okay."

The hoarse whisper broke her heart some more. Priscilla smiled nonetheless, at least until she managed to teleport back to Sun Village. There, amidst the carnage, she allowed the scowl back out. She allowed more tears to fall for these people she hardly knew. Yet she would always remember their kindness.

Two hours were a difficult time limit, but previous preparations and copious amounts of magic saw it through. When she returned to fetch Flare, Priscilla found her wrapped in ash grey from head to toe. Wendy and Yukino were the exact same, their silent message understood. The dragon inclined her head.

"Very well. Gather before me."

They did it without complaint and moments later, all three could behold the devastation. The sun shone brightly upon them as if to mock the gravity of Flare's loss.

Soft gasps and choked sobs were all that broke the silence. Rubble had been cleared and pyres were erected in a wave around Atlas Flame. The dead had been placed on neat bundles of wood and straw, every one covered in crimson sheets. Had any of them cared to look, they would have found the nearest woodland decimated.

Wendy and Yukino each held one of Flare's hands, though the Dragonslayer's gaze kept wandering to the obvious dragon observing them. When his charge strode his way, he even mustered the energy to rise. Flare knelt right between two of the pyres.

"I have returned, great Atlas Flame."

"You have," he rumbled sadly. "And yet. If only you never had to. My apologies, Flare. I failed them as I failed you."

"It was not your fault," she tried, but the words rang hollow. Atlas Flame bristled.

"I am the guardian of this village, but lacked the strength to prevent this. Now all I can offer you is to begin the procession."

He reached out a single paw, pressing his claw against Flare's cupped hands. Heat flared and when his limb retracted, a single, shining spark remained. She held it gently like a newborn, face ashen.

Rising slowly, Flare Corona inspected the pyres. Priscilla stood silent and still as the human woman approached the nearest one. Atlas Flame's spark was nestled in its center, where it remained until Flare retreated. She returned before him to receive another and the process repeated. No one spoke while Flare worked, placing inert sparks one by one.

Once the final seed of flame was placed, she motioned the three observers to her side. Atlas Flame settled next to them, head bowed. "I salute the victorious dead," he murmured. "May the flames carry their souls to the great beyond. Mayhaps my king will receive them there, as he will receive me once my time comes."

On the last word every spark blossomed as one, spreading like wildfire. The pyres were consumed in seconds, burning brightly against the evening sunlight. Heat surrounded them, though only Yukino and Flare actually felt it. Neither acknowledged the pearls of sweat running down their faces, eyes glued to the thousand giant bonfires. Wendy, too, was mesmerised.

Priscilla suspended all thoughts for the time being. Indulging in base instincts, she simply watched the fires roar and eventually fade. Night had fallen by the time only cinders remained. A faint rustle snapped her out of the trance, so different to the many cracks of burning wood and bone. Flare had sunk to the ground, quietly weeping. Her friends embraced her again without a word. Ash covered the lot of them, carried by the winds. Priscilla as well, but for once she ignored it.

"Gather their ashes, friend Priscilla," Atlas Flame instructed. She inclined her head and focussed, letting great, grey rivers ascend to the heavens. They intermingled, forming a great cloud that blotted out the moon and stars. She needed no further instructions, producing gales that tore the mass apart. She gave them great force and let them loose to carry their flakes across all of Ishgar.

She felt strangely empty by the end, all but the rage gone.

Everyone watched the ashes disperse. Atlas Flame's gleam cast long shadows under the bleak moonlight.

A faint crackle announced the native dragon's motion some time later; he bowed to Wendy.

"Although the circumstances are unfortunate, I greet you regardless, princess of the sky. Be welcome, daughter of Grandine. And farewell."

When he went on to say goodbye to Priscilla, he found her scowling.

"Just like this? You just fade quietly into the night?"

He huffed in response. "I am but embers now. There is precious little of me left. Except, perhaps...."

He trailed off, studying the devastated Flare. She had yet to turn their way, eyes still on the barren field of stone the ceremony left behind. Only broken dreams now lived in the fallen village. She twitched when the dragon spoke her name: "Little one. Flare. Will you carry the torch in my stead?"

His question had her whirl around. "Me? B-But I, I'm just, I couldn't-"

She babbled nonsense, weakly motioning for the ruins. Priscilla ached at the sight of her distress, but held back out of curiousity. Atlas Flame held his silence for a while, at least until it became clear Flare would not form a coherent sentence. Then he interrupted her: "And what of it? You received a spark of myself and are well, more than well even. You journeyed forth into the unknown regardless the uncertainty and danger. Will you carry my flame, or will you not?"

Flare herself had no idea how to respond to this. She was empty, spent, and woefully inadequate for such an honour. In her own opinion, at least. She chanced a look to her friends, but Yukino stared blankly and Wendy was deep in thought. A glance to Priscilla revealed the giantess deathly still. Only the faint tremors running through her entire body proved she was still alive.

A chuckle rumbled, shaking the very air. "This is not a question for anyone but you to answer," Atlas Flame declared. Then he leaned forward, gently intruding in Flare's personal space to meet her gaze. "Listen into yourself."

So she did. Her heart cried, throbbing in pain with every breath. Her soul wept for the many lives lost. Her mind was empty beyond the faint notion of failure. She did not know. At least, until she realised Atlas Flame himself thought her worthy of his gift. That the ones responsible for this massacre were out there. Her eyes snapped open, alight with an emotion she rarely ever felt. A spark of anger ignited in her chest.

She wordlessly knelt before the majestic flame, who inclined his head in turn. "Very well. Then you shall have it. All the power I have left. Surpass the path you would have walked as but human, burn your enemies until not even ash is left!"

His voice grew consistently louder until the final words rolled across the dead village and the countryside. Streamers of golden orange connected Atlas Flame and Flare, pulsing with the song of life. His life, ended so long ago yet still vibrant. It inflamed her spirit, but she grit her teeth and bore the searing pain. Every fibre of her body burned. His next words echoed through her as much as around her: "Never cease, never falter, burn an inferno until the final spark is sprung! And never forget: you are the last child of Atlas Flame!"

Ever more of his essence flowed into her. She was connected to the last fire dragon, saw him for what he was. And for but a moment, Flare beheld the majesty of his memory. Not a centuries-dead corpse, but the Atlas Flame of his prime. For a mere instant she thought she could hear a swarm calling for her. A king, larger still and clad in crimson scales. A long scar ran over his left eye... and he smiled upon her.

The vision faded and Flare fell to the ground. A faint cloud of ash sprung up; she wanted to speak, but had to cough violently. Her throat was so hoarse, had she been screaming?

A yelp drew her attention to Yukino; the other woman was bent forward like she wanted to help, but something held her back. She was difficult to see behind a screen of flickering air. Wendy slowly inched closer, softly laying a hand on Flare's forehead. It was so cool.

As her mental faculties returned, Flare began to realise that Atlas Flame was gone. Nothing remained of his body, but the light yet shone. Her own hair was now pure flame, her skin a few shades darker than before. She curiously studied her hand; fire sprouted from each fingertip with but a thought. A deep breath imbibed more Ethernano to be burned up as fuel. Flare blinked at her limb, realising that her mourning garb burned away.

Once the implications registered, she let out a startled squeak and covered her lady bits. Torrents of fire followed the motion of her hands, forming protective and thankfully obscuring layers of orange and red over her skin.

Then her friends started laughing at her. Flare pouted, well aware of Priscilla's indulgent smile. She felt better nonetheless. She had a goal now, to find those responsible for her home's destruction and bring down the hammer. Atlas Flame gave her what strength he had left. So she would use it to make this world a better place, one bad person at a time.
 
7.2 Legacy
"Life Link magic requires great care in its deployment, for it can quickly become one's downfall. As its name implies, the caster may link two lives together; when one is extinguished, so is the other. It is a useful tool to stop more idealistic opponents, but inherently not a kind discipline. More scrupulous wizards can make use of one-sided links to bind their subordinates to their own life, effectively forcing them into service. I once considered binding my Etherious the same way, but ultimately decided it too cruel."

-excerpt from "Lost Knowledge - Brightest Light and Darkest Dark"

Being an elemental of a sort, Flare quickly learned, was a lot more work than 'just' being a wizard.

She rolled over on the stone slate Wendy graciously prepared for her. Being malleable enough not to need care for where she slept was good. Having no blanket because it would burn sooner or later was bad. Never being cold despite the lack of blanket was good again.

Once the haze of sleep faded somewhat, Flare spent a few minutes staring at the ceiling. Wendy was awake already and Flare knew exactly what would happen if she was caught unawares these days. Not that she minded anymore, but there was no time to spend right now. A flick of her wrist and exertion of will had part of her skin ignite; or rather, to be more exact, her skin returned to its natural state of being fire. The flames quickly grew to an acceptable size before turning solid. Now wrapped in an orange and crimson dress, Flare sat up.

Burning any and all cloth she tried to dress with was bad. But her internal flame made a decent substitute and was completely free. That was good. Being effectively naked at all times still took some getting used to. Not to mention that she could no longer live in Crocus, what with the close proximity of flammable material wherever she deigned to sleep.

Quietly appreciative of Wendy's immediate offer to take her in, Flare stretched and opened the door. Just as she thought, her friend was already glaring holes into the nearby walls. Quite literally, at that. Flare moved in almost two months ago and the younger woman decided she would live like a queen. It was sweet of her to do so much construction and expansion, kept underground for safety purposes. The safety of every bit of greenery above, that was.

Wendy's ears twitched and she paused in her work. "Good morning," she greeted softly while accepting a hug. "Does everything work fine now?"

"Yep," Flare chirped back with a smile. She found she liked hugs, both giving and getting. Or maybe Wendy was just nice to hug. Then again, so was Yukino. "But there is not really anything left for me to burn." It was all rock and clay.

"At this point I expect you to melt a hole through the ground," Wendy deadpanned back. Flare giggled, then squeaked in surprise when a firm hand smacked her rear. "Now off with you, Quelaan is up and waiting."

"Of course. See you later."

Wendy already went back to work and Flare walked down the main corridor. Quelaan took an interest in her fire-based powers before the transition, but now she insisted on teaching. Flare did not have any talent for dancing or attuning her soul and mind, but fire she knew. So even if pyromancy was beyond her for now, she got something out of the spider lady's lessons. Her sister Quelana joined them sometimes with new ideas and explanations.

Two months it had been since Flare set fire to the remains of her home. This place was nice, but not quite home. Maybe just not yet, but that was in the future. At least Flare could feel hopeful, thanks to Wendy, Yukino, and some other friends she made since her arrival in Fiore. The niggling wrath remained locked tightly in its cage, waiting for the day she found Tartaros' demons. Priscilla coughed up that tidbit when she asked, as well as the fact they were far out of reach.

After an hour of conversation with Quelaan, she stepped out for a walk. Fresh snow greeted Flare, hissing and steaming the moment she came near. Hands folded behind her back, she strolled along the frozen earth in a cloud of vapour. Faint sunlight made the distant hills shine like gemstones.

"Hey!"

The shout drew her attention to Yukino, who hurried her way with a coat thrown over her new favourite dress. The cloth swished around her ankles, its hem wet from snow. She waved cheerfully and wrapped Flare in a hug that she returned enthusiastically. "Good morning, sparky! You ready for the trip?"

"I did not have breakfast yet," Flare retorted gently to calm down her friend. "Neither did Wendy, I think." She already knew the quip coming her way by the coy grin Yukino favoured her with. "You know we have chores in the morning."

"Yeah. Chores." Yukino snorted, then wrapped an arm around Flare's shoulder. They walked back together, following the trail of bare earth. "How often was it chores and how often did she fuck your brains out? C'mon, spill."

Although Flare was used to her friend's very direct language by now, the question still left her squirming. Faint shocks of heat escaped her grasp, but were nowhere near strong enough to injure the other woman's arm around her shoulder. When the expectant silence began to stretch, she shily averted her gaze. "Twice."

"Only twice? Wow." Yukino whistled. Flare's cheeks exploded with heat regardless. "That's some major restraint from her."

Flare almost committed the classic blunder of elaborating. She barely caught her traitorous tongue in time and let the subject drop. "Anyway, do you think Mavis will be there?"

"Oh, absolutely. And maybe August won't wail at us for once."

"He was teething."

"Annoying is what he was."

"I did see you making faces at him when you thought nobody was looking."

Yukino grimaced, but did not refute the point. Flare shook her head with a smile. She made certain to keep some distance from children since her transition, mainly because she did not want to risk hurting them. August only watched her attempts to amuse him with big eyes, then giggled and threw a fireball at her face.

Only this time, Fairy Tail's New Year's celebration did not feature the excitable toddler. He was sick with Ethernano overload, carefully tended to by someone called Meredy. Flare had never met the woman, but Mavis trusted her with her child and that was good enough. Team Skywing enjoyed the few hours they spent in Magnolia, but before long they returned to Crocus. To celebrate the actual new year with Wendy's and Yukino's families.

But life went ever onward and all these tender moments passed into memory. Weeks and months went by for Flare as much as anyone, including Kyoka.

Half of the new year had soon passed; May approached its end. For once however, the Etherious was as happy as she could still be. Breeding silkworms was a wonderful idea and she greatly enjoyed the work. Experimenting with minor alterations and their effects was more fulfilling than she expected. No horrible monsters, no combat forms, just plain and simple exploration. She did have to dissect several specimens to learn about their biology, but that was alright.

Now Kyoka was far less active with her guild work. In exchange she quickly became known as a producer of quality silk after buying the desolate farm she once wandered through. How fortunate that Fiore's guild system allowed as many memberships as one desired, as long as no two guilds were part of the same field. She could easily join a local merchant guild to sell her silk.

Kyoka hummed contendedly as she thought back to the unfinished work waiting at home; sewing did not come easily, but it felt relaxing. Not quite mindless work, but close enough.

Right now however, she was delivering silk. The local tailours and seamstresses were happy to buy some of her produce and turned it into beautiful pieces. Even a few of her guildmates wore them, making Kyoka's mind boggle time and again when she saw that. These elegant suits and dresses were made from material she supplied.

"You really should dress up a bit," Master Bob teased gently. He ran a finger down the long, leaf-green sleeve that hid her claws. "I know why you don't, but you still should from time to time. A lady deserves to feel beautiful after all." All of this he topped off with a pearly smile. Kyoka averted her gaze, shily shaking out her sleeves so they did not catch on anything. Her arms were free from elbow to shoulder, where her equally green vest began.

"I don't know," she lied, "this is comfortable." The vest and long, ochre skirt may not be the height of fashion, but they were nice. Easy to put on, easy to move in, and the skirt also covered her avian legs and feet.

Bob tsk'ed at her and waggled his thick finger. "My dear girl, one of these days I will get the girls together and doll you up. Even just once you will be the center of the room. The experience alone is worth feeling uncomfortable for a time."

Then he used his secret weapon.

"Please? For me?"

How a grown, middle-aged man in a pink sweatshirt and flobby pants could deploy puppy dog eyes with such devastating power, she would never know. Kyoka wanted to refuse, knowing she would never feel beautiful. She never wanted to be the center of attention ever again. But she just could not say no. A faintly annoyed growl rumbled in her throat as she slumped forward on the bar. "Alright, fine. But only once. And not right now," she pre-empted his predictable follow-up. "I need to make more deliveries. This was just a quick stop for lunch." A glance at her plate told Kyoka there was half a sausage left. She quickly gobbled it up. "And-oh-look-I'm-done-bye!"

Her tactical retreat from the premises was accompanied by chuckles. She all but flew through town to get back home and grab the final packages. Despite the promise she just gave, Kyoka smiled; despite everything, she was happy. The everpresent tome resting in the crook of her elbow flared as if to reaffirm that thought. A slew of foreign satisfaction fluttered through her.

After placing all the silk in her own item box and rejoicing at having learned this bit of magic once again, Kyoka went for the train station. The ride to Magnolia was not too long and she still had that book Jenny lent her. It was a bit too mushy for her own tastes, but good enough to waste an hour with.

Once the last page was read and the town appeared on the horizon, she could not help but become apprehensive. Magnolia was home to Fairy Tail. The Devourer lived here, as did Death. Priscilla, the master of Fairy Tail. At least Mirajane was absent until further notice and Magnolia was large. The chance to not recognise a six metres tall woman before she noticed Kyoka was slim.

"Maybe I should have sent it per mail," she mused quietly, but discarded the notion as soon as she said it. Not only did this method save on transport costs, it also allowed her to travel. Fiore had more than a few beautiful landmarks that she got to see like this. Magnolia itself sported one, too; nobody would mind if she climbed the grand cathedral after making her delivery, right?

In spite of her attempt to disperse worry with idle musings, it kept gnawing at the back of her mind. Her mood worsened some, but she managed to fake a smile when interacting with the elderly seamstress, a Madam Greene. She received praise and gratitude for the quick delivery, then was sent on her way with the payment secured. The entire trek to the shop was free of giant interruptions. In fact, the only guild mark she even saw was on a child, maybe eight years old. And that boy was too busy impressing his peers with basic fire magic.

So reassured, Kyoka was immediately blindsided by a tiny something colliding with her leg and clinging to it. A cheerful squeal accompanied them, making Kyoka flinch. Her head snapped down and she found herself staring into black eyes. A strong sense of recognition flickered through her entire being, one she never felt but always knew. Her eyes widened to comical degrees while the toddler giggled up at her.

"Oh, August! Let go, you can not do that!"

Another hand reached into her field of vision, gently prying the boy off of Kyoka. As she slowly left her trance, she was confronted by a wave of blonde hair. Quite alike to the shock on his head, at that. The diminutive woman held her squirming son with an embarassed smile. "I'm so sorry. He just keeps running off ever since he started walking."

"It's alright," Kyoka responded mechanically. Her eyes kept wandering to the boy. She knew who he was without a shadow of doubt. Her body sung, a silent demand to prostrate herself before the creator's child. Zeref's blood ran through his veins. Did the mother know?

"Are you okay?"

The question drew her from her musings. The other woman seemed concerned now, leaning forward. "You look a little out of it."

Which was when August escaped and grabbed Kyoka's sleeve. The mother smiled at that. "And it looks like he likes you. Come on, have a seat."

Without even waiting for a response, the lady maneuvered Kyoka to a nearby bench. Sandwiched between mother and son, she could not help but wonder how this came to be. Curiousity burned in her mind, almost as bright as the desire to flee this interaction. At the same time, she felt alive in a way she did not in years. Just being near him envigorated her.

"You already met my son August. I'm Mavis."

"...Kyoka. A pleasure." The words rang a little hollow, but niceties were easy enough to emulate. "Your boy is a curious one."

"Oh, you have no idea!" Mavis giggled, prompting August to do the same. The toddler cheerfully threw a handful of sparks in Kyoka's face, who leaned back in surprise. Mavis kept giggling. "Age doesn't stop him from learning magic just by looking at other wizards. He will be wonderful one day. Just like-"

She cut herself off there. Kyoka noticed, but pretended she had not. Instead she nodded along and focussed on what Mavis said. "I heard that active magic at such a young age can be detrimental on the child? Is he well?" The mere thought of him being under threat made her want to rend it apart. But how could she kill a condition caused by Ethernano?

Mavis thankfully nodded. "Frequent sick spells and a few fevers, but nothing dangerous. I have a few specialists who make sure of that. He is such a brave boy. Aren't you, August!"

"Yesh!"

Mavis cooed over her son, leaning past Kyoka to ruffle his hair. The show of affection made her yearn for such a touch as well. It was a small thing, yet more pure than anything she had ever experienced. The closest were her guild master and his kindness.

A warm breeze caressed her face and carried the dark thoughts away.

"Huh. How curious." A finger ran over her shoulder, where the blue pegasus settled. "You're a wizard, too." Mavis thankfully returned to her own spot before she fell into Kyoka's lap, but her impish grin remained. "You're the first Blue Pegasus wizard I see without suit or dress. How come?"

She shrugged weakly, unwilling to have that conversation again. "I like what I'm wearing."

"Oh. Okay. What about that book you carry? What's it about?"

"Um."

She hesitated. The cover of E.N.D.'s tome was hidden by her arm and sleeve, but she never let go of it. Mavis leaned closer to inspect it while Kyoka tried to come up with a believable lie. No one ever asked about the book.

Before her panicking could transition from internally to externally, Mavis delivered a convenient out: "Oh, is it a magic book?"

"Something like that, yes."

"Can I read it?"

Kyoka protectively clutched the tome to her chest. She never put it down, not since she took it from that pedestal. How could someone be this innocent and this aggravating at the same time? At least Mavis got the hint and retreated from Kyoka's personal space. "I guess that's a no. I'm sorry, I didn't know this is precious to you."

She dismissed the apology without even thinking about it. Mavis was not to blame, she just tried to make conversation. Kyoka was really not good at that anymore. Feeling a little guilty and self-concious, she wanted to at least appease her. "It's fine. This is, it... it belongs to someone dear to me."

It was not even a lie, inasmuch as a living book could belong to anyone. They were all Zeref's demons.

Thankfully, Mavis left it at that. Her understanding smile was misplaced, though. "Alright. Let's talk about something else then, what brings you all the way to Magnolia?"

This was easier to answer. Kyoka gladly took the offered change of subject and explained. "Oh, I was making a delivery to one of the local seamstresses. I'm producing silk, you see."

"Wow! That's awesome!" And she had an excitable blonde in her personal space again. "How does it work? What kind of magic do you use for that? Does it pay well?"

On and on the questions spewed forth, but for once Kyoka fielded them indulgently. This was not so bad. August lost interest in their conversation after some time and started to toddle around, however. Mavis' attention never left Kyoka, but the Etherious could tell she observed her son as well. Whenever he tried to run off, a band of rainbow light carried him back to where Mavis could see.

After some time spent explaining the minutiae of harvesting silk with her own methods, the other woman clapped her hands. "Oh, this is all so interesting! I want to hear more. But, err, I didn't have lunch yet. August needs some food in him too. How about we go to the guildhall and I treat you? You can't just come all the way and not drop in!"

That was the moment Kyoka realised a grave oversight. Right there on Mavis bare foot sat Fairy Tail's mark, pure crimson. She rose and made to get away, but a small hand firmly grabbed her arm around the sleeve. Mavis' smile was uncompromising and no amount of excuses could deter her. Kyoka was slowly but surely dragged to the last place she wanted to be. She only had enough presence of mind to not dislodge herself forcefully. Violence would only make this worse, especially with August on Mavis' other hand. Up the street and through the crowd, soon enough the guildhall came in sight.

"Come on, come on! Don't be shy!"

And Mavis somehow failed to realise what kind of state Kyoka was in. She dragged the faintly resisting Etherious all the way to the door and kicked it open.

Kyoka expected a vengeful spectre to cleave her in two again the moment people saw her. Contrary to her expectation, nothing happened. A few people welcomed Mavis back and some appreciative looks went her guest's way. If anything, August received more attention than the two of them combined.

Just because they failed to recognise her however, did not mean Kyoka did not recognise them. She remembered that muscled, grizzled man reading a book in a quiet corner. Several sheets of parchment and writing implements floated around him, a white coat not quite hiding the lack of an arm.

August toddled away to another pair, the man in poncho and wide-rimmed hat while the green-haired woman wore a wide dress to accomodate her bloated belly. He babbled at them excitedly and was welcomed with hugs and cuddles.

Kyoka clutched the tome closer to her chest, trying not to have a breakdown. She was still alive, she could move, the monster was not even in the room. Yet the mere probability of her presence left Kyoka on edge.

Once August had left and Mavis dragged her to a nearby table, people approached them. More than one commented that they thought they saw her before, but no one could figure out where. Kyoka would not know either, she never met any of them. Her helmet was long gone, allowing her to blend in somewhat. She carefully huddled nonetheless, hiding every glimpse of her feet beneath the skirt's folds. Mavis already ordered meals for the both of them, but her hands would be safe at least until the food arrived. Maybe Kyoka could morph them into something vaguely human for a time, regardless of the pain involved?

"Oh hey, a new face!"

Her head turned at being spoken to again. This time it was someone familiar, with light hair and a pink shirt. His easy smile dimmed the moment their eyes met. "Come now, don't be scared of little old me. Name's Jet. What brings you to these parts?"

"Kyoka's a silk merchant!" Mavis threw in cheerfully while Kyoka freaked out on the inside. "Madam Greene will have new stock soon, she just brought some for her!"

"Oh, neat." He laughed along and inclined his head her way. "So your name's Kyoka? ...wait." His brow furrowed and she frantically tried to remember if she gave her name that day. Then he looked down, and so did she. Her sleeves hid both hands. Looking back up she found Jet rubbing his eyes. When he looked at her again, he squinted.

Then, almost as if in a dream, he reached for her sleeves. The motion was so slow she could have stopped it a dozen times, but guilt and fear kept her frozen. He grabbed the cloth and pulled, revealing bone white claws. Mavis stopped in surprise, but the rest of the room paid little attention. Kyoka could not breathe, her chest constricted.

Then she flew. Her only instinct was to curl up around the book before her back hit the wall. Impact was too little to hurt her, but she kept lying under a rain of plaster. Mavis shouted something she could not parse, a moment later a second impact rained more dust on her. Jet dropped down right in front of Kyoka.

"What were you thinking!" Mavis demanded while grabbing Kyoka's shoulder and helping her up. It was oh so tempting to stay on the ground, but she forced herself to rise.

When he shouted back at her, Kyoka regretted getting up. "She's a demon, that's what I'm thinking! The same one that almost killed us a few years back!"

Now they had the entire room's attention. Mavis paused before slowly turning her head. She sought Kyoka's gaze, but the Etherious could not meet her eyes. She tried to move, tugging ever so faintly on Mavis' hand, and freed herself. The blonde let go out of surprise more than anything.

Before she made more than two steps, a tremor ran through the wooden floor. Then a voice sounded, one she would never, ever forget.

"What exactly are you all shouting about?"

Kyoka's head snapped around so fast she cracked her neck. There she stood in an oversized doorframe. Larger than life itself and twice as merciless. The Etherious' body locked up entirely in primal fear, unable to so much as whimper. All thought left her mind at the sight of her, unable to avert her gaze. All she could was hope she went unrecognised, pray to dead gods she never believed in.

Alas, the moment those amber eyes focussed on her and her torn sleeve, she was recognised. Vague concern morphed into surprise, then something cold and vicious. Silence reigned as Kyoka failed to look away, to get her legs to move. Anything at all, really. Priscilla began to stalk toward her, tail flicking erratically. Her hand reached sideways as if to grasp a weapon not yet drawn. Such fear struck Kyoka that she managed a single step back, stumbling over her own feet and falling heavily. No pain registered. She almost lost hold of the book, what with how slack her arms were.

And then there was fire.

It blossomed from her side, forming a wall between herself and Priscilla. The dragon stopped in surprise while a heatwave forced back everyone else. The protective warmth shocked Kyoka's system, finally freeing her of the terror; she scrambled to her feet and fled as fast as she could. Instinctual motions contorted her body, vest torn apart as a pair of wings painfully sprouted from her back. She did not care for anything beyond the gate that promised safety. Nobody reacted in time to pursue.

The moment her clawed feet hit cobblestone, Kyoka ducked and leapt fifty metres into the air. Erratic wingbeats carried her higher and away.

Meanwhile, the hall she left behind was quiet. Priscilla stood at the entrance, aghast as she stared after the rapidly shrinking figure up high. Mavis felt much the same, wondering just how all of this could have happened.

Apparently, their confusion was shared by everyone else. "What the hell?" Jet wondered out loud. "That was definitely her, but she was completely different."

"Yeah," a pale Elfman added. He absently rubbed the stump of his arm, telling Mavis exactly who was responsible for that. She never got that kind of impression from Kyoka. At all. After a moment, she decided to say it.

"She didn't seem like she would hurt a fly."

Neither man had an answer to her implied question. An air of confusion covered the entire crowd.

When even the current master appeared at a loss for words, Mavis poked her knee for attention. "Jewel for your thoughts?"

The answer was not what she expected: "I do not understand how she is alive." Priscilla frowned, unaware of the dumbfounded looks her comment earned. "I know I killed her and there is no coming back from my Death magic. Yet somehow, this Kyoka survived. I delivered her corpse to Mirajane in person."

The implications became clear to Mavis in an instant. If all of Tartaros had a means to escape death, that gave them an unlimited number of powerful bodies to throw at any problem.

A muttered "Thanks, Zeref" from someone in the crowd soured her mood right after, to the point she grabbed August and left. Mavis only returned to the entire conundrum hours later, but then it remained firmly in her mind for days. Kyoka was a little awkward but nice, not to mention August loved her. Did her son somehow recognise the Etherious for what she was? Could he tell?

That as well as the apparent ability to revive drew Mavis to investigate. Dressing her toddler in a set of adorable travel clothes, she bought a ticket for the train. Her destination was easily determined with what she knew; Kyoka was a member of Blue Pegasus, a fact everyone else thankfully missed over the entire drama.

Walking through the door, she immediately realised her mistake. A half dozen hosts and half as many hostesses greeted her with dazzling smiles and immaculate dress. Thoroughly embarassed and envious, she was almost thankful when the women spotted August and began to coo over him. The mood rapidly shifted and she managed to push back on her embarassment. "I'm looking for Master Bob. Is he in?"

"Over here, dearie! It's been a while!" The man himself waved cheerfully and his men backed off with smiles and nods. Mavis cast a glance to her son, who was perfectly safe on the lap of one of their models. Only then did she approach the bar where Bob passed her a glass of juice. "What brings you here today, Mavis?"

"I'm looking for someone," she explained kindly. His smile was infectious. "One of yours, I'm sure. Her name is Kyoka."

Had his expression just dimmed? Indeed it had, the ever-smiler began to frown. "Curious, that," he responded, more thoughtful than anything else. "I have not seen her the last few days."

Mavis suddenly had a bad feeling. "Since when exactly?"

"Monday, I think." Exactly the day they met in Magnolia. Thankfully, Bob did not make the connection. Or if he did, he did not say.

"She may be at home," one of the hosts chimed in. "That happens sometimes. I can walk you there if you want?"

"I appreciate the offer, but I would rather go myself." The conversation she planned to have was better had in private. Not to mention Mavis felt a little unwell having so many attractive people around. "Where does she live?"

They helpfully gave her directions and Bob insisted on foisting a sandwich on her. She then had to rescue August from a blissed-out Jenny, privately pleased when he immediately came to her instead of staying with the beauty. He still waved goodbye to everyone, sweet thing that he was.

The trek to Kyoka's homestead, a remote farm close to the woods, was eventless. Beyond her son toddling through every puddle he could find after the rainstorm that night. Mavis indulged him and cleaned up afterward, at least until the farm came into view.

From then on, she carefully crept forward. Kyoka did not seem hostile, but that may not mean anything. On top of that, she somehow thought it a good idea to bring her child in reach of an Etherious. For a moment Mavis strongly considered to turn around. But when she noticed the door standing ajar, she shot caution to the wind and crept inside. A sturdy wooden house opened itself to her.

Two steps in, she stopped and reconsidered what she just did. Ushering August back outside after putting a noise-cancelling spell on him, Mavis firmly rapped her knuckles on the door. Then again, and again. To no response.

"Kyoka? Are you home?"

Again, nothing. Engaging her more ethereal sense, Mavis knew there was a person-sized concentration of Ethernano inside. So she entered, traversing a messy living room; clothes lay on the ground, but no food or anything perishable. From there she entered a modest bedroom where she found Kyoka after all. Or, at least she found someone hiding under a thick blanket, shivering.

"Kyoka?"

They did not react to her name, even when August called a garbled echo. Mavis cautiously settled next to the lump of blanket and pulled it off. What she found immediately made her feel awful for suspecting something bad. There was Kyoka, rocking back and forth with a book clutched to her chest. She did not even acknowledge Mavis, shivering infrequently. The sight broke her heart a little. How could this be the same being that attacked her Fairies?

"Hey. It's okay, you're safe."

While no response came, Kyoka did react to an attempt of touching her shoulder. She screamed, leaping off the bed and into the nearest wall. Mavis blinked after her while August gabbled in surprise. Kyoka landed on all fours, head swivelling wildly before focussing on the intruders. Mavis was only half-risen, reaching for her magic just in case.

Thankfully, a quiet murmur of "I'm alive" announced Kyoka's return to coherence. She hesitated, frowned, and then broke into bitter tears. Claws covering her face and still in the torn clothes she wore that day, the Etherious made for a miserable sight. Mavis threw caution to the wind again and wrapped her in the biggest hug she could give. After seeing what his mother did, August mimicked her actions. The book Kyoka still held pulsed a pleasant warmth, dispersing even Mavis' heavy mood somewhat.

After a long while, the tears stopped. Kyoka fell slack, cradled by a smaller woman and a toddler. "I wish I could take it all back," she whispered desperately. Not that Mavis needed any more confirmation. She gave her some more time before occupying the other woman's kitchen. After pouring them both tea, Mavis joined her tentative friend at the table. August settled in her lap.

"I'm sure they will forgive you if you apologise properly."

A faint headshake was the answer she got. "I, I can't. I can't go there. She's, I, I can't." Kyoka shuddered violently, large eyes seeking Mavis' gaze. "I don't want to die."

Mavis ran a hand through her blonde tresses, worried as well as curious. "Just what happened to you to change you so?" She was nothing at all like anyone imagined an Etherious. Nothing at all like Tartaros acted.

Kyoka needed a moment to register her question, but then she chuckled mirthlessly. "Foolish notions of superiority do not survive being slaughtered like cattle," she spat. Her bitterness made Mavis wince, giving Kyoka the chance to change the subject. Her gaze lowered to the toddler grabbing for his mother's teacup. "Your son. Do you know who his father is?"

Mavis froze, long enough to give herself away. Kyoka heaved a heavy sigh, clutching the book tighter to her chest. "So you do. A word of warning then, all Etherious can instinctively recognise their creator. And I can tell apart his descendant at but a glance. Keep him far away from the other Etherious. The desire to serve is strong, but seeing him raised by 'lesser' humans will gall them greatly."

Mavis nodded, hugging August tighter to herself. He squirmed a little, but proved unable to escape.

When the silence dragged on, Kyoka fidgeted. "Do you, perhaps, know where he is?"

"He passed away," Mavis answered, almost robotically. Both of them were teary-eyed now. "He never even got to meet his son."

"My condolences. I suspected already, but to have it confirmed." Kyoka slumped, displaying more openly how Mavis felt. It still hurt terribly to be reminded.

Conversation dried up after that point. Kyoka ultimately saw her guests to the door and wandered off to tend to her silk worms. She never quite recovered her mood, which did not help Mavis any. But there was nothing she could do beside giving it time. It took until hours later to realise she forgot inquiring about the revival. Jet, Droy, and Elfman all took the fact Kyoka felt miserable about her past deeds with mixed feelings. Priscilla only frowned, giving nothing away.

Mavis did not dig this time. She was too busy pondering what it meant for August that all Etherious could recognise him. If even just one spoke Zeref's name out loud, there would be a storm coming her way. She really hoped for it not to happen. Because deep down, Mavis knew she was not a good person. If someone threatened her baby boy, she would readily torch all of Earthland to protect him.
 
7.3 Beginning of the End
"In the end, it is our choices and disposition that decide who we become in life. Whether we can become proud of who we are. Magic is never an excuse for evil; it never forces us to anything. I always hoped for an age in which everyone becomes the best they can be and will continue to do so. Perhaps these notes will aid in such an endeavour one day."

-excerpt from "The Love of Magic", afterword

December 788. A bit more than three years passed since the majority of her youngsters and Makarov vanished from Tenrou Island.

Right now, guild master Priscilla was uncertain how to proceed; she pondered the conundrum of the dark guild Tartaros, as she often did these days. Their rampage across Ishgar continued and became ever more daring. Foreign guilds, wizards, bounty hunters, mercenaries all, went to call them to battle. Every single one was eradicated. Then Tartaros made their statement by counterattacking their home bases and hometowns. No quarter was given to anyone, be they man, woman, or child.

Tension grew in Fiore as well, even though they still kept their distance. Once again Priscilla wondered if she should interrogate Kyoka. But Mavis would not like that, she knew. By all accounts, Etherious Kyoka was reformed and no longer a threat. Mavis assured her that the other woman did not even know what her erstwhile companions were doing.

Remembering her awful reaction to the mere sight of Priscilla, she put the matter aside. Even if she were willing to inflict more existential dread, Kyoka would have no answers.

"If only we could figure out a pattern," she mused toward Mavis, who was brooding over a map of the continent. "Then I could take care of them."

Her companion grimaced at said map. A flick of her wrist erased the many arrows and circles she drew to start anew. Dozens of reports fluttered around her, just as agitated as she. "Nothing!" she seethed. "There is no pattern, Pris! I can't predict something that isn't there!" She threw away her charcoal in disgust. It shattered against the wall. "It's like they throw darts at a map!"

The dragon was about to console her, but thought better of it. As she learned from Warrod, Mavis Vermillion-Dragneel was the continent's most famous strategist. Evidently, her pride would make any consolation be interpreted as pity. So rather she engaged the statement itself: "Is there nothing at all you could glean from the reports?"

Mavis despondently blew a strand of hair from her face. "All I found is that no country is hit twice in a row and never Fiore. Everything else is as random as it can be." She rubbed her forehead next, groaning. "If they gave me something to work with or stayed in one spot long enough for us to respond...."

"But they do not, which is what makes this so aggravating." Priscilla agreed wholeheartedly. Even her teleportation was limited to areas she visited before or could imagine vividly. Being guild master, she could not venture out for long to expand her range. Not to mention she was needed nearby in case Tartaros came to Fiore after all. "Then there are the casualties their retribution for the attempt would cause."

"Casualties aren't even the biggest problem," Mavis countered. A spell circle appeared over the dark spot on the wall, restoring her charcoal stick. It flew back into her hand as she gestured. "Their raids are starting to destabilise economies across the continent. Famines are on the horizon, new wars for resources."

She had not considered that. For all her accumulated knowledge, Priscilla still lacked a great deal of insight on human society. "So we are running out of time," she surmised, to a nod. Her own brow creased in thought. "Perhaps a more active approach, then? Wendy and Flare are formidable. If we convinced their team to scout for Tartaros' position and report back?"

The trio turned into frequent visitors of late. They appeared in Magnolia every other week to study and request information. Priscilla did not like making the suggestion, but they were mobile and more than appalled by Tartaros' actions. Mavis did not shoot her down immediately, either. She pondered the idea for precious seconds before shaking her head.

"Too uncertain. They are not fast enough to follow a trail, even if they find one. And if the Etherious find them, well. I don't like their odds. They're barely better than the odds of coincidentally stumbling over Tartaros."

"So we are still at square one," Priscilla muttered. She was just as unhappy as Mavis. Perhaps more so. She was Everlasting, yet felt so incredibly powerless that her temper flared ever more of late. Only a lifetime of temperance kept her somewhat calm.

"At least life goes on as normal around Fiore," Mavis said in an attempt to lighten the mood. She was not even wrong, what with how distant the danger was.

Five months later, in early May, that changed. A small village went out in a firestorm that set a vast woodland ablaze. Worth Woodsea burned, soon reduced to a plain of ash. Only the mighty archtree remained in its expanse, now a sight reminiscent of the calamitous war which shook a more primal world.

Priscilla only heard about it days later. It was too late to prevent the strike against Fiore by then. She was one of the first to yet another devastated village. This time a dozen crucified bodies delivered a clear message, carved into their flesh: the terror would not end until the traitor Kyoka was handed over.

Suddenly, she felt very stupid. The thought that Kyoka may be their traitor never even crossed her mind. That one acted so pathetic the last time they met that she instinctively discarded her as irrelevant. The moment she brought word of all this back home, Mavis pushed August into her lap and ran for the train station. Priscilla did not even have time to remind her of teleportation.

Meanwhile, the Blue Pegasus guildhall was abuzz with frantic conversation. News of the attack hit like a bomb. Kyoka herself felt faint at the news; her family was busy the last years and she barely even noticed. So absorbed in her new hobbies and pastimes that she paid no attention to the news. Barely speaking with others did its part in keeping her unaware. Even now it hurt to think of everyone she left behind.

And now they were here. She kept her head down and let conversation roll over her like waves. The fear of being found returned with a vengeance. She wanted to stay in obscurity, keep hiding away until they left. She knew she hurt them, but the mere thought of facing them made her everything ache.

"Everyone, calm down!" Master Bob pleaded. The panicked chatter quieted somewhat, but it did not fade. He ran a hand over his face. "I heard your opinions, but this is bigger than Oracion Seis was. I still want to reform the coalition, the Council's opinion be damned, but this isn't just my decision."

"But what if they come for us?" A voice called from the crowd. "You know how brutal those beasts are, they'll kill all of us!"

"Yeah, why don't we do our thing and fund the others to do the fighting?"

Bob's expression was thunderous, but he cut off his rebuke before it could begin. A worried look went her way, making it clear he figured out the parts she never told anyone. And from there, Kyoka realised several others were glancing her way, too. How many of them made the connection?

"Wait, who are you? The guildhall is closed."

Jenny's wary question shifted attention away from her. The model's gaze was focussed on a hooded stranger leaning against the wall. Kyoka needed a moment to turn her head, only to freeze when her eyes fell on them. An Etherious without doubt. She knew instinctively, even before he threw back his hood to reveal familiar features. A shock of blond hair, canine ears sprouting from his head, and a smattering of dark spots around his eyes. Sharp fangs were displayed in a cheshire grin.

"Why," Jackal responded with a mocking bow, "just a humble visitor to this fine guild. Do you happen to have seen a stray Etherious?"

Kyoka tensed when his eyes flickered to her. Strangely, he did not acknowledge her despite knowing she was right there. No one else answered him, though some began to channel Ethernano. "No? Oh well." He turned back to Jenny with a mischievous wink. "Funny how it took you like ten minutes to notice me in the room, sweetheart. Oh, how unfortunate that my old pal Kyoka isn't around. She'd absolutely remember what my favourite thing is."

The last sentence was uttered as he stared her straight in the eyes. Kyoka realised belatedly what he meant and her eyes widened. So did his grin, losing all its jovialty.

"Oops."

She had no time to prevent it. Everything exploded, drowning Kyoka's world into fire, ash, and gore. Her own shell held, but her friends were nowhere near as strong. She threw herself onto the nearest person to shield them with her body, blinded by the light. She shivered atop them, kicking herself for having forgotten Jackals explosive handprints. What remained of the roof came down with a resounding crash right after.

When her ears stopped ringing, all she could hear were the moans of the dying. They were quickly drowned out by hysteric laughter. Jackal clapped his hands as if he just heard the world's funniest joke.

Ignoring him, Kyoka forced her head up to survey the carnage. Her nose itched from the nauseating mix of smoke and blood, but the sight was worse. Her heart skipped a beat when she beheld Master Bob's motionless upper half. The dead and dying were strewn across the room, some arms and legs sticking out from beneath the rubble.

"Ah well," Jackal told the room cheerfully, "I must have missed her among the rabble. Not that it matters, the Devourer isn't even here anymore. Well." He turned to leave, not even acknowledging Kyoka staring at him. "If anyone sees our lost friend, let her know to come find us. We have some catching up to do. But until then I'm going to have some more fun."

Fear and fury warred within her. Her eyes twitched, then her entire body began to shiver in incoherent rage. Everything she built for herself, the friends she made, all turned to ash in an instant. But even now she could not bring herself to pursue, to fight. She could only rear back and scream out her anguish.
 
7.4 Kyoka's Lament
Mavis knew everything went to hell before her train even arrived. A dark cloud hung all over town and the lands beyond; fires still raged in some places. She leapt out the window because the tracks were destroyed, hopping over the crowds. The devastation grew more pronounced the closer she got to Blue Pegasus. Less and less people obstructed her path, though she heard whispers of a bloodcurdling scream following the explosion. In Mavis' mind, it could only belong to one person.

She forced herself through the rubble of what was once a guildhall, only to find a scene of carnage. Even the war had been nowhere near this visceral to her as a strategist; the sheer amount of blood and gore hit her like a punch to the gut. And that sickly sweet smell, tangy and heavy. Mavis heaved, then bent over and lost her lunch. She felt no better afterward, stomach contracting as if to force out more.

Forcing her way to her feet, Mavis let the shock persist and numb her senses. She finally spotted Kyoka, bent over an unconcious Jenny. A bloody stump remained of the model's left leg; it regrew over the span of a minute under Kyoka's ministrations. The sight inspired what little awe Mavis could muster, regardless of how repulsive it was to behold. She shuddered, staggering forward to Kyoka's side. The Etherious did not acknowledge her presence. She placed Jenny at the only wall still standing. A dozen others were already set down there, their clothes so torn Mavis could vividly imagine the wounds they once sported. Every single one stared numbly at the ruins of their home.

The shock began to fade and she barely managed not to retch again. Feebly squeezing Kyoka's arm, Mavis found her voice: "C-Can I help?"

The other woman paused for a heartbeat, head swivelling this way and that. Then she shook her head. "All gone," she murmured before mutely beginning to arrange the dead. Mavis joined her, levitating debris away so she could get at the bodies. It was grisly work and she threw up bile in-between, but she soldiered on.

Knights arrived at some point during their silent work, dumbstruck as well as horrified by what they found. The commander quickly set everyone to work, carrying out the formerly wounded and covering the dead already dug out. Mavis did not know their names, but she was grateful nonetheless. They worked by her side without comment or question, a display of camraderie. One man lent her a waterskin and some cloth to clean out her mouth. It helped, though she was still a mess afterward; covered in soot, dust, and dried blood.

In the end however, it was only the two of them left. Kyoka gave no answer when questions were asked. When the knights left them be, Mavis remained by her friend's side. They stared at the ruins of what was Blue Pegasus mere hours ago. Up and gone faster than the eye could see. The guild was all but finished, Mavis knew. Four fifths of theirs were dead, including the master and most senior members.

Her mind slowly turned to the subject of how to proceed when a whisper broke the grave silence: "This has to end."

Kyoka was shaking, expression warring between despair and incoherent rage. The book in her arms gleamed in response, emanating warmth and a sense of anger. Mavis wordlessly embraced her friend, holding her as tight as she could. "It will end," she promised the unresponsive woman. "Come on, let's go."

She gently tugged Kyoka's hand and led her away. Finding a train took only a few minutes. She paid it no mind, leading her friend to a free pair of seats. Nobody bothered them, though it took Mavis half an hour to realise why: they were both dirty and bloody. Kyoka's clothes were more strands of cloth than anything else and her own were torn. But even when she took notice of that, she could not care enough to do anything about it. Her attention was on Kyoka, who stared out the window without comprehending much of the journey.

Perhaps this was for the best. Kyoka gave no protest when they disembarked in Magnolia, nor when they entered Fairy Tail's guildhall. Their arrival created a great deal of surprised noises and worry, but Mavis waved everyone off. Then she sat down her friend at a table, taking her hand. No one started anything this time; Elfman kept studying the Etherious, still pale but mostly curious. Jet peered at her with mixed feelings also while Droy ran into the back. He returned with a thick blanket to throw over Kyoka. Alicia brought a bowl of water to wash at least their hands and faces with.

Heavy steps soon announced Priscilla. The current master entered without fanfare, but interrupted herself before the first word was out. The sound of her voice still alerted Kyoka, who flinched. Yet she did not freeze up, cradling the book against her chest. After a moment of scrutiny, Priscilla inclined her head. Then she addressed the room: "Tartaros is moving in the open now. As of ten minutes ago, they took Crocus hostage and placed their flying base above the city."

Kyoka shuddered again. Mavis soothingly rubbed her claws to little effect.

"What do we do now?" Mystogan inquired. He already shouldered his staves, clearly ready in case Priscilla called on him. Mavis liked the idea of an actual assault at this point, regardless of the risks. They had the firepower, even if she refused the S-rank thus far. They needed to act soon either way, considering Tartaros appeared in the open.

However, Priscilla had other ideas. "I can take care of it now. This ends today."

"Please don't."

The voice was quiet, shaky, but it was heard nonetheless. The room quieted as all eyes turned to Kyoka. The Etherious was staring at the table, unable to meet anyone's gaze. "It would be too cruel, to make them end up like me." She chanced a glance and shuddered heavily the moment her eyes met Priscilla's. Mavis watched in worry, but her friend firmed up with a scowl. "But you are right. It has to end."

Kyoka had no fighting spirit left, Mavis knew that. Yet here she was, all but ready to seek battle. It would be cruel to push her further but they had precious few options.

Then a flash of heat permeated the room. Its source was once again the book in Kyoka's arms. Only this time, the warmth carried with it an undercurrent of determination and anger. The entire guild sat or stood a bit more straight. All eyes were on the book now.

"I was meaning to ask," Priscilla began after a long moment, "what is with this tome?"

Kyoka stared first at her, then at the book, and gently placed it on the table. "Etherious are anchoured to their books," she explained in her usual soft voice. "They contain our essence. As long as they exist, we can be restored. We keep reviving no matter what. Destroying the book does not kill the current us, but it cuts off our restoration. Only master Zeref would know how to restore a destroyed tome."

The mere mention of his name sent a nervous twitch through the room. Mavis' mood sunk another fraction, as did Priscilla's, but no one noticed. The information they just received was worth its weight in gold; why did she never ask? Why did she try to be polite? And why did Zeref's books say nothing about this little tidbit?

"So this is your book?" Mystogan inquired calmly. He wandered over to stand by their table, studying the cover. Kyoka shook her head.

"No. This one is mine." She drew another tome out of her chest, badly damaged. It was placed next to the other. The cover read C.K.R., as opposed to the pristine one's E.N.D..

"What do the initials stand for?" Mavis could not help but ask. "And why is yours so... torn?"

Kyoka threw her a mirthless smile. "Creator Kyoka Restoration. I do not know what master E.N.D.'s initials mean, only he would. As for my book's state, well." She threw a look to Priscilla, too tired to even be scared. "It ended up like this after my last death."

"I see. So the Lifehunt could not quite cut that far in a single strike." Her musings still produced a flinch. The dragon paid it no mind. "Is it common to carry another Etherious' tome with you?"

"N-No," Kyoka denied shakily. Her claws absently ran over the black book, drawing sparks from it. "I took it with me when I left Tartaros. He, master E.N.D., he disagrees with them like I do." The tome flared in response, finally cluing Mavis in that it was actually aware. Then it pulsed a palpable sense of content for some reason. A journey concluded, destination reached.

Even Kyoka glanced back in surprise. "Fairy Tail? This is the place you sought?"

When another flare announced agreement, Priscilla's expression changed. Only Mavis saw, what with her attention between the two in case a fight broke out. The dragon's curiousity morphed into surprise and then understanding. She made no motion to share her epiphany, though. Mavis considered calling her on it, but with Etherious involved she decided to do it in private.

"What's E.N.D. stand for?" Elfman ventured quietly. He kept a healthy distance between himself and Kyoka, but her crestfallen appearance seemingly dispersed most of his reservations. "Didn't know Zeref's into silly puns."

Mavis almost laughed. If only that boy knew how much Zeref loved his puns. Or, at least he did a hundred years ago.

Kyoka was unaware, rather more occupied with the question itself. After a moment, she had to hang her head. "I would like to know that myself," she admitted. "None of us know and the king has never revealed himself to us. We located him somewhere in Fiore a few years back, but where he is exactly or what he looks like...." She shrugged helplessly.

As if in response, the tome's cover flapped open. Light poured out, a smog that filled the hall to surprised shouts. It emanated a feeling of questions answered and warmth. A moment later, Mavis stood alone in a lush forest. Or, well, not quite alone.

Before her was that same book, closed and as pristine as the one Kyoka possessed. Only this time Zeref held it under his arm. Before him perched a crimson-scaled dragon, easily the size of their guildhall. A scar ran over their left eye and sharp teeth were bared.

"You're certain?" the great beast asked in a reverberating growl. "Once our work concludes, there will be no more fire dragons to set you free. Atlas Flame remains, but he is too far diminished to burn away Ankhseram's curse."

"I am," the much younger Zeref confirmed with a faint smile. "The pain we have to inflict on these children will be for naught if Eclipse fails. I need to remain and ensure another opens the gate on the other side."

Mavis' heart clenched at hearing his voice, exactly like it was when she met him. Tears clouded her vision, but she soldiered on to see what the tome meant to show her.

"Then I accept your sacrifice and curse Acnologia forevermore. May his remains be hung out to rot, never to know cleansing flames." The dragon, Igneel, heaved a sigh and shook himself. His body flickered, almost losing coherence before becoming physical again. "Damn it," he grumbled, then focussed on Zeref again. "Now where is mine? You already brought the other two to Grandine and Metalicana, no?"

His head turned this way and that, but no other human could be found. Zeref allowed himself a faint smile and raised the book. Mavis understood at once.

Igneel, however, stared at the black cover incredulously.

"Zeref?"

"Yes?"

"That's a book."

Even though his chuckle sent another pang of hurt through Mavis' chest, she giggled along. Streamers of colourful light flowed from his fingertips and into the tome, drawing out a boy. A perfectly ordinary child with short, pink hair. He was fast asleep and carefully deposited on the dumbfounded dragon's paw. Igneel stared down at him, sniffing audibly.

"This boy smells of fire like no human should. Yet a trace of you is there also. What have you done?"

Now Zeref's smile grew brittle. He ran his hand over young Natsu's head. "This, my friend, is the reason I am cursed. I could not accept his death, preserved his soul, and reformed it into a new body. I defeated death, in a sense. At least close enough to draw Ankhseram's ire. But I made too many mistakes. The conversion cost most of our memories together. He will not even remember his own brother."

Zeref paused to wipe away a tear. Mavis wanted to hug him so bad she tried anyway, but flew right through him. Her point of view reset to where she stood before as he continued: "And now I will do this onto him. Some further adjustments imbued powerful magical properties and an inclination to fire. He will be our king piece and the stake through Acnologia's rotten heart. A fire devil, raised by the king of all fire dragons. At his side we place a shield of iron molded by Metalicana and a fleeting healer prepared by Grandine."

"Is that why the book says E.N.D.?"

"Heh. Almost, but also yes. He is the desired end of Acnologia. And if no other means can be found to lift my curse, he will one day remove me from this world as well. It felt appropriate, all things considered. E.N.D., Etherious Natsu Dragneel."

He stroked the sleeping boy's head again and turned to leave, tome in hand. "And remember: six hundred and sixty six days exactly."

The scene lost coherence on those words, depositing her back in the guild hall. E.N.D.'s, Natsu's book snapped shut, leaving behind dazed silence.

"Natsu?" Macao asked weakly. "It's Natsu? Our Natsu?"

"Seems like it," Wakaba added thoughtfully. He took a drag from his pipe. "Everyone saw that, right? Wasn't just me?"

His question remained unanswered, seeing that Kyoka broke into haltless giggles. She hugged herself, shaking helplessly like leaves in the wind. Mavis stared at her and reached out slowly, calling her friend's name. Kyoka did not react until Mavis' hand touched her shoulder. "This is," she began haltingly, interrupted by renewed giggles. "All this time we searched. Us fools, expecting destruction in the king's wake. And every time we look here, it was you lot. Every time. And now it turns out, he was with you all along! Hidden in plain sight, the most innocently destructive group on Ishgar!"

She almost dropped to the table, somewhere between laughing and crying. Mavis saw many fidget in embarassment and felt a little herself. In the end she merely rubbed Kyoka's back until the Etherious calmed down.

The only one not surprised was Priscilla. Mavis resolved to bring this up once they had time. For now, though... "Now that this question is answered," although she had dozens more, such as if the tome was still connected to Natsu or its own entity, "what do we do about Tartaros?"

Silence answered her. Many were uncertain, some more already decided but did not want to be the first to speak. Then a hand squeezed hers, rough claws scratching skin. Kyoka studied her from below. "There is one way to pacify Tartaros, potentially. The creator's word is our command... and the same should go for his flesh and blood."

Her proposal registered and was refused instantly. Mavis scowled at the mere idea of taking her baby boy into such danger on a mere assumption.

Priscilla barely saved her from saying something incriminating: "Alas, Natsu is not present. Regardless of whether he actually still counts, considering what we just saw."

Mavis wordlessly shook her head at Kyoka while everyone looked elsewhere. The other woman inclined her head in acceptance and rose. "Then I will take my leave now. It is about time I face the music."

She did not look happy, but no one stopped her. Mavis wanted to, but what could she say? At the very least she immediately made to follow her friend. Priscilla did similarly, if at a distance.

Halfway out however, Kyoka paused. She closed her eyes and took a deep breath before turning around. Elfman in turn took a step back when she approached him. "What are you- hey!" He flinched violently when her claw touched him. The whole guild tensed. Cloth tore under precise strikes, revealing the healed stump of his arm.

"Righting at least one of my countless sins before the end." Kyoka replied. A black spell circle popped into existence. Ethernano flowed through the frozen man in perfectly even waves. His flesh bubbled and Elfman moaned in pain. Then it began to grow. Even Mavis, who saw it just earlier that day, watched in awe as the entire limb was restored in the span of a minute. Perfectly pristine, as if it were never gone.

Once it was done, Elfman stared at his shaking hand. It opened and closed weakly, barely making a fist. Kyoka sighed softly and turned to leave. "My magic does not restore the deteriorated muscle memory, I'm afraid," she explained in parting. "You will need to relearn how to use it. I'm sorry."

Mavis wordlessly took her hand at the gate and Priscilla loomed over them. The dragon bent down to wipe away her tears, both for the kindness offered and the memory of her beloved. Then she offered a single finger to the intimidated Kyoka. "I see now you are indeed a changed woman."

The Etherious clasped it weakly after some coaxing from Mavis, which prompted a faint smile. "I will teleport us to Crocus now. You will not face them alone. I owe you at least this much. Now that I know my Lifehunt is inadequate for the task, I need to discuss the matter with someone."

Priscilla grimaced as she spoke of her own power and channelled Ethernano. Kyoka grew tense for a second, but remained in place. Mavis squeezed her hand gently and... they fell through nothingness for a fleeting moment, then they were there. Standing on a sprawling meadow at the foot of a small hill. Tartaros' flying boulder hung right above them, casting its shadow upon the land.

"Missed the sweet spot again," Priscilla muttered, then strode off and motioned them to follow. "Needs more work."

Mavis did not need long to recognise Wendy's lands. The roughly built stone house on top of the hill was a dead giveaway. Kyoka studied their surroundings warily, continuously glancing up to her erstwhile home. Mavis hurried her along regardless, hoping they went unnoticed.

Soon enough a wave of palpable anger distracted them. It parted before Priscilla like a wave, but laid over Mavis' mind like thick fog. Kyoka began to shiver, absently squeezing her hand back. "What is this place?" she inquired, but received no response. Priscilla led them down the slope into the cavern, where an actual dragon and a dragon-to-be were pacing. Both stopped on their entrance, heads snapping to the crossbreed.

"See, there she is!" Flare leapt to her feet, hair ablaze and roaring all around her. "Can we burn them now?"

Yukino and Solano both rolled their eyes at that while Wendy growled assent. The witches, both Quelana and Quelaan, remained uninvolved at the sidelines.

"Afraid not," Priscilla cut off the worrying debate they were not privy to. She approached Kalameet. "From what I learned, Etherious possess special safeguards to revive, no matter how often they are killed. We need to devise a counter strategy first."

"And we can't bring any forces here without provoking a fight," Solano added primly, "which, if I may remind you all, would happen right next to a hundred thousand civilians." She pointed over her shoulder, in the direction of Crocus. Mavis winced in sympathy as the math did itself in her head.

"They will attack anyway if we wait too long," Flare argued back heatedly. And she was right. However, Mavis' considerations quickly revealed that neither side could be disregarded.

"How about," she suggested slily, "I call in two old friends and we destroy them before they know what hit them? I doubt you can reverse-engineer an Etherious this quickly," she added in the direction of Priscilla, whose unimpressed gaze flicked between Kyoka and Kalameet. Right. "Or perhaps you can, but we can just as easily destroy their books and be done with it. They're all up there, right?"

Her friend nodded hesitantly. "All Etherious store their books in a secure vault deep within Plutogrim. His armour is strong, though. I don't know if you can break it from the outside. And, um, he is alive and will digest you if you go inside."

Mavis quietly wondered what her husband made something like that for. Knowing him, perhaps so his Etherious could have a home. She shook off the thought and beamed up at Kyoka. "Worry not, I know a few spells that will do the trick. Even Pris doesn't know those."

"Not yet, you mean."

"Spoilsport. Now let me just dial Precht...."

Thanks to the unstoppable march of science, Crocus' Archive-network was well established at this point. All Mavis had to do was cast Archive of her own or possess a recognised Lacrima with the spell. She had Precht's number memorised and a quick message went his way. She did the same for Warrod right after. Then Mavis crossed her arms behind her back and fluttered her lashes at Solano. "What do you say? A Wizard Saint and three prospective Saints, two dragons, a Dragonslayer. That ought to suffice, no?"

The other woman ran a hand over her face in clear exasperation. But in the end she nodded. "I'd rather not have Yukino this close to the action, but knowing you," she addressed her sister directly, "you're not leaving anyway. So keep Aries ready."

"I'm not a kid anymore, you know?"

Just then the ceiling collapsed.

Kyoka felt the discharge right before it happened. But it was too late to warn them, now they would be buried just like-

That was as far as her thoughts went before sunlight flooded the area. The spider woman nobody introduced squirmed near a wall covered in silk. She failed to notice the annoyed black dragon glaring all the stone to nothing. Her eyes were glued to what surrounded the newly made hole: Mard Geer stood front and center, flanked by every single one of the archdevils and a few dozen lesser Etherious. Half of Tartaros stood with him, surrounding the hole.

As if on their own, Kyoka's eyes sought Seilah behind her former leader. The other woman merely arched an eyebrow, expression deceptively calm.

"How unfortunate," Mard Geer jovially spoke into the surprised silence. "It would have been nice to end this little game swiftly. Alas, you always have to make it difficult for us, Kyoka." He paid no mind at all to everyone else surrounding her. Not even Death, Priscilla, whose annoyance the wayward Etherious could feel pouring over them. "Now, if you would return E.N.D.'s book?"

She shivered under his cold stare. There was familiarity, but neither mercy nor consideration. She truly was not one of them anymore. She still did not want to fight; if anything, she wanted to flee.

Then a spark lit, flames shining brighter than the sun for but a moment. The burning woman glared up at Mard Geer with hatred. "You," she seethed, "You killed them all!"

All her outburst earned was a passing glance. Mard Geer's mocking smile never wavered. "Pardon, have we met? And could you narrow it down a little?"

The woman roared and took two steps. Kyoka stood by her path and quickly caught her arm, holding tight.

"Don't, that's what he wants!"

The woman growled and fought to break free, but Kyoka held on. The agony of having her flesh burned away faded soon as there was only bone left, but she continued to grasp the berserker.

Meanwhile, Mard Geer chuckled. "Indeed. Humans are oh so easily coaxed into making mistakes once they get emotional." The other Etherious snickered, which clearly riled the furious woman up further. A surge of barely bearable heat attempted to dislodge Kyoka, but her flesh regenerated faster than the flames could burn it. Yet none attacked despite the animosity. Perhaps, she felt, they lacked the resolve to come at her after all.

But that did not matter. Right now she violently pulled that woman back. Just this once, her voice reverberated with its old strength and certainty: "I said stop! Unless you want to die, too!"

Her words made the lady flinch and cease struggling forward. Her fires flickered momentarily as she sought Kyoka's gaze. Once the Etherious could be sure she got through to her, she let go and nursed her charred flesh. The stench wafted between them and pain pulsed up and down the entire arm. Even as it began to regenerate, it felt so much more intense without a life on the line. Kyoka took a shuddering breath while trying to dive deeper for the old her. She needed it now.

With her arm restored, she glared up at her former leader. "This has gone on long enough. You made an enemy of the majority of Ishgar's realms and alienated the rest, all for nonsense like this. Is this what you wanted, Mard Geer? For one to kill the other?"

"Speaks the traitor."

"I did not betray anyone!" Her shout reverberated, echoing from the walls. Several of the lower ranking Etherious flinched. Seeing Mard Geer's smirk, Kyoka realised he got under her skin and growled. "I have never once revealed anything I knew of us. I never acted against your aspirations. I left because I could not do it anymore and none of you ever understood that!"

A mocking huff sounded from Seilah, who stared down at her coldly. "It sounds like weakness to me. Who would have thought that you of all people would come to associate with prey. Which, of course, makes you prey."

Kyoka fumed. She knew a dozen awful things to respond with, but not a word made it past her lips. Lashing out at them would only hurt them more than her betrayal already did.

While she still fought for composure, a dark chuckle rumbled across the area. Her gaze snapped back to the actual dragon lounging nearby. Half the assault force took a step back as they realised it was not a statue. Kyoka only knew because she saw him move before. Now he rose with grace to draw any feline's envy, ignoring the Etherious entirely. His gaze rested solely on Priscilla. "Is this what thou see of our folly? Our ambitions laid bare, superiority yet to be shattered by the Lords?"

The giantess huffed in response before nodding. "Indeed. Tis arrogance which heralds ruin."

"And there is even one to behold what all others miss, spurned for her choices made."

Kyoka could vaguely understand what the joke was, but only Priscilla laughed at it. Everyone else stared at the two, conversing without a care for the army-killers surrounding them.

Perhaps it was that disrespect that made Jackal leap. He broke formation and came right at her, teeth bared... only to stop in mid-air, no two metres from her face. His hands almost touched her nose. Kyoka felt the world grow still, her entire body frozen. Memories assaulted her, but she could neither run nor scream. She could not even cry or close her eyes. All she could do was watch the giantess turn lazily. She studied her frozen assailant, distinctly unimpressed.

"Ah yes," she murmured after an eternal moment, "I tend to forget local tradition requires one to call a technique's name." She snorted, all kindness discarded. "Legacy of Reign Eternal." The words were painfully loud in this perfect silence. Kyoka could see that it reached all the way to her kin from her peripheral vision.

Then there was motion beside Death. Where she was predominantly white, the black dragon Kalameet studied her. "Curious," he commented. "Thou force thy surroundings into a state akin to our realm."

"How dost thou mean?" The blunette interrupted. She, too, paced around to study her frozen friends. "Why is it indiscriminate?"

"None can escape eternity," Priscilla responded. "And Kalameet is correct. I impose the original state of being upon all within my reach. Ethernano improves it to its ideal form by my will. Worry not for thy companions, they will be fine."

Even now she paid no mind to Tartaros or the assailant still frozen right next to her face. Kyoka's mind slowly began to work again, even if thinking was all she could do at the moment. Priscilla flaunted her might shamelessly, forcing her enemies to watch. Perhaps now they understood what changed Kyoka so.

Then Priscilla turned to Jackal again and produced her scythe. The sight of it triggered more flashbacks, almost making her faint.

"Hold," Kalameet stopped the monster from Jackal's execution. He stalked forward until he stood by Priscilla's side; gleaming orange shone from his forehead. It felt deeply wrong to Kyoka, but still she could merely watch as the dragon rose to his hindlegs. His visible glare enveloped Jackal.

Nothing happened.

"Well?"

"I see their patterns and how they were assembled. I see the resuscitation of which thee spoke. The Etherious is permanently linked to their anchour, but this same link severs on death. A corpse remains, but the essence is safe within their anchour. Safe to spawn a new body, carrying all memories and experiences. Simple yet effective. Artful, even. A shame Zeref since passed."

The verdict was delivered without any hint of actual despondence. He was almost clinical in his analysis. The alien light continued to shine, however. "Now to unravel this."

To her and likely everyone else's shock, Jackal began to glow and dispersed into nothing. It took all of a few seconds. Kalameet paid no mind to the life he just extinguished, musing thoughtfully: "Safeguards along the structure, to be activated by Zeref alone. Potentially to curb misdemeanor? Regardless, following the link is trivial and so is destroying the anchour through it. The result is death."

The previous panic Kyoka felt made way for an icy cold feeling. Priscilla raged and hated, but for a reason. Kalameet simply never cared to begin with, stomping down on a group of ants that dared climb his foot.

The stasis field receded then, allowing Kyoka to slump to her knees. She wanted to run again, but her legs did not move. Seilah had a similar reaction up above while everyone else stood in abject horror. Mavis muttered something about being trapped in her own body again while the two white-haired humans fainted. Wendy and her fiery friend caught them both.

"Now," Priscilla spoke, her voice cutting through the terror like a knife through butter. "According to Fairy Tail tribunal convention, you have until the count of three to beg forgiveness. Kneel."

Her word was a command like none Kyoka ever heard. It almost carried a physical compulsion. Her body followed thoughtlessly, even though she was not addressed. She could barely lift her head to see that none of the Etherious did likewise.

"One."

Then Seilah shuddered, falling forward much like Kyoka had. She did not rise.

"Two."

The word was not fully spoken before all the rest charged as one. They only made it halfway down before the area froze again, locking Kyoka in place. Priscilla's gaze was cold now.

"Three. Kalameet?"

Kyoka and Seilah had to watch as their family was dismantled one by one. Slaughtered without a chance of retribution or revival. Kalameet worked methodically, not that his gruesome task took long to accomplish. If anything, he grew faster with practice. Only when his head turned to Mard Geer were they interrupted by Wendy: "Leave this one alive. Flare will want to do this herself."

"Vengeance, for kin slaughtered." It may be agreement of a sort. Kalameet's gaze flickered over the frozen form, then remained for far longer. Mard Geer's arms and legs dissolved until there were only stumps. "His might is neutered and his anchour primed to destroy itself on death."

So saying, he moved on. Throughout it all, Priscilla stood still as a pillar of might. Her will held the entire area in stasis. No quarter was given, no mercy granted. Every single Etherious that did not bend the knee was annihilated. They challenged power unrivalled, now they paid the price. Only when the deed was done did Priscilla allow the world to breathe once more. Kyoka lay shuddering for a moment, at least until the slap of flesh on stone reminded her of Mard Geer. Raising her head, she found her once proud leader lying on the ground.

Then soft sobs reached her ears. A voice she knew oh so well. Kyoka forced herself up and climbed out of the hole to reach Seilah, to embrace her. Even though she felt empty herself, somehow Kyoka found the strength to whisper soothing words to her last remaining family.

She paid no mind to the arrival of two elderly men, a cadre of flying wizards, or the Rune Knights. No attention was paid to her in turn... mainly because roaring flames and pained screams monopolised their attention. Kyoka shuddered while Seilah in her arms only cried harder. But she was alive, they both were. A spark of hope blossomed within Kyoka's emptied heart. At least this one would not die.

"I'm sorry," Seilah whispered. "I'm sorry I'm sorry I'm sorry...."

Her desparation made Kyoka tear up also. She squeezed the other woman tighter. "I'm sorry too," she cut off the stream of apologies. "So, so, sorry."

Boots crunched along the grass around them, but neither paid mind to the military presence. At least until a calm voice called out: "I believe it is time to end this for good."

It was Mavis, flanked by the elders. Her hardened gaze pointed straight at Plutogrim. Priscilla stepped next to them but was waved back. The blonde smiled without any humour. "My turn."

"And how are you going to beat those beasts, little lady?" One of the Rune Knights inquired with a mixture of politeness and disbelief. Kyoka wondered as well.

She and Seilah sat there, watching and feeling how the Ethernano coursed through Mavis. She snapped her fingers and light began to flicker over her hand. A spell circle manifested, weaved through the skin. Three distinct streams followed it as she channelled.

Then a great firestorm exploded from behind them. Priscilla flinched forward while everyone else shied away from the blistering heat. Like the breath of a living god it reached for the heavens, engulfing Plutogrim. Kyoka could only stare as his thick belts of reinforced armour began to melt. The largest Etherious began to wail in pain, forcing many people to the ground through noise alone. Beneath them danced the witches, unaware and uncaring for the beast's peril. Two brought forth the flame of their souls while their brightest student sent them heavenward.

Meanwhile, the glow in Mavis' hand grew so bright Kyoka could no longer look at it. She stood firm while everyone else inched away, instincts as old as humanity urging them to flee. "Light of sun, moon, and stars," she intoned. "Come forth to eradicate my enemy. You were always one, now regain your union and pour forth! Fairy Glitter!"

The three streams that mixed in her palm became as one. Ethernano ravaged the entire area as a halo appeared above Plutogrim; it quickly turned into a constricting ring. The melting Etherious could not evade; he was caught and restrained. But the ring pushed further inward, slicing through his weakened armour. It gleamed a bright gold, growing brighter still before exploding violently.

Then vines grew all across the countryside to catch the pittance of debris. A few bodies fell also, quickly caught and restrained. Moments later, another stream of Ethernano from the other old man covered the entire plains under a singular spell circle. "And now to clean up," he groused, a ball of light between his palms. Kyoka could feel it connect to the giant circle above, just as golden as Fairy Glitter had been. "Fairy Law!"

The light engulfed them all and Kyoka closed her eyes in expectance of the end. But it was only warm, almost gentle as it brushed past her. Seilah hiccupped, equally unaffected. No one was, she realised moments later. Except the bodies she spied earlier, who were simply gone. The circle faded and the elder wiped his sweaty face.

Everyone stood in silence, cowed by the might of Fairy Tail. Kyoka never realised that Mavis was this powerful. Even the dragon that crawled out of the chasm by their side looked upon them with newfound respect, or so she assumed. They certainly had his interest.

Now all that was left were she and Seilah, and the book of E.N.D.. Tartaros was no more, gone without a trace. Extinguished without mercy.

She was still staring when Mavis tugged her hand. The other woman wordlessly bid Kyoka to stand, then dragged her and Seilah away. No one impeded them, most still too busy gawking at where a continental threat had just been.

She still had trouble believing that it was well and truly over.

Perhaps a part of her already expected what happened next.

An invisible force grasped for Kyoka. It wrapped around the Etherious and the book she held as a black hole opened overhead. She could do no more than gasp in surprise before she was torn away from Seilah's side. Mavis' hand left hers unbidden. Upward she flew, spinning around herself in an attempt to escape. But it was futile; the hole in reality swallowed her whole.

And from the sheer amount of power expended that day, a slumbering dragon's senses tingled once more. One colossal eye slid open, then the other. Acnologia began to wake.
 
7.5 Return
A deep pressure struck everyone surrounding Kyoka in the moment before it happened. Even Priscilla felt as if the very air made its best attempt to crush her. She knew this sensation, but only when the Etherious began to glow did she recall. By the time she formulated a response, Kyoka was gone. Simply dissolved into nothing, vanished.

The horned woman she comforted before looked around frantically. "Where did she go?" she demanded weakly before her eyes came to rest on Kalameet. "Did you...? What happened? Where is she?"

She turned around herself as if Kyoka would leap out of hiding any moment now, but they all knew better. Mavis was just as stumped. Meanwhile, Priscilla's suspicion grew more pronounced by the fact Kalameet recognised it as well. As did Quelaan and only Quelaan. Quelana by her side gave no indicator of recognition.

"Thou felt it before?" she inquired, just to be certain. The malformed witch nodded hesitantly. Kalameet was already deep in thought. Priscilla was too, meaning they both followed the same idea. "Tis the same sensation as the moment before I arrived in this world."

"Indeed," the other dragon agreed.

Neither paid any mind to the assortment of humans still nearby. Kalameet did not much care for the remaining Etherious' worried inquiries, either. Priscilla drowned them out to focus on what was important. Then she realised what she just did and forced her agitation down; although a member of Tartaros, she surrendered and was pacified. She deserved a chance. So she knelt before her and explained gently: "All three of us are not born of Earthland. An unknown phenomenon dragged us from our world and to this realm. If the reverse is also true, then she will be perfectly fine, if unreachable."

The far smaller woman slumped forward and more tears glistened in her eyes. While Mavis took over comforting her, Wendy approached the dragons with a severe expression. "Thou could not sense it," she began quietly, voice carrying only to their little group, "but this was native magic. I felt the surge of Ethernano." Precht nodded to give her words credence and Wendy frowned. "Moreover, I recognised it. Faintly, but I have felt something almost like it before. Ah!" She snapped her fingers as the memory resurfaced. "There is a device beneath Crocus. We found it while exploring the catacombs."

Priscilla was intrigued. She had no idea what kind of device could have such an effect, but she intended to find out. "Would you lead us there?"

"Of course."

The group split after a quick discussion; Warrod and Quelana remained to watch over the unconcious Yukino and Solano, as well as a strangely quiet Flare. Mavis took the other Etherious, Seilah, away to stay at Fairy Tail's guildhall for the time being. Priscilla, Precht, and Kalameet were led down into the catacombs by Wendy. Her perfect memory ensured that no map was needed to find the device. No light was needed for the three of them to see, but Precht provided it for himself regardless.

However, Priscilla knew what it was the moment she laid eyes on it. Though imposing, neither of the true dragons was intimidated. "Eclipse," she murmured, but her voice carried in the cavern. Two heavy gazes hit her back, their curiousity crawling over Priscilla's skin. "Tis the device that brought thee to this time, Wendy."

"I see."

The aspiring dragon kept her silence for several seconds, digesting these news. Then her brows furrowed. "Hold. I arrived in this time through a creation of Zeref?"

"What, pray tell, makes you believe Zeref built such marvel?"

Her deflection was measured, but Wendy's unamused look told her the other woman knew it for a fact. "Aries told me," she deadpanned. "I wonder how thee learned of this fact without ever laying eyes on the device before."

She could keep the secret, but Wendy was already involved anyway. If anyone deserved answers, it was her. So Priscilla shrugged. "Zeref told me."

Wendy blinked in surprise, much to her amusement. Priscilla went on to confuse her more: "He taught me how to wield Earthland's magic. I am also the one who killed him, although of this I am not proud."

"And why, pray tell, is that?" Wendy echoed her earlier tone. "Just about anyone on Ishgar would be overjoyed to hear such accomplishment."

This, on the other hand, was none of Wendy's business. So Priscilla held her silence.

Precht did as well, far more interested in Eclipse. "How peculiar," he muttered as careful probes of Ethernano flickered between his fingers and the pristine steel. "Metal woven from magic and anchoured to a position in space. This device is completely immutable and immovable unless dissolved. I can barely grasp the foundation, much less its inner workings."

Despite his words, he was clearly eager to study. Then again, so was Priscilla. Zeref's greatest accomplishment lay before them. Not to mention, what did it have to do with the vanishing of Kyoka? Or their own arrival in Earthland?

They examined it for the better part of two hours. Even Kalameet was stumped for a time, having to go over everything step by step to grasp its composition. Being more familiar with Zeref's works and this type of magic in general, Precht figured it out before either of the dragons. When he did, he was almost reverent:

"Eclipse taps into the root world, where Lordran lies. Time is too stable here to be outright broken. Opening a portal between two eras is impossible, regardless the power provided. So instead this device sidesteps the problem through a stable pathway to the root, mapping the correct point in its time, and then connecting a second pathway to that same point on its second activation. Incredible!"

Priscilla wholeheartedly agreed. Even Kalameet bent his head toward this marvel of human ingenuity. Wendy did not quite grasp the genius of what Zeref did beyond that time travel was hard, but she was impressed nonetheless.

"But how does this connect to the Etherious' disappearance?" Precht went on. "Is it intentional?"

"No," Kalameet rumbled in response. His voice shook the cavern some, then he prowled forward to study the device some more. Several minutes passed in silence before he explained: "I understand now. The disposition is unintional. Indeed, I doubt Zeref even knew. Upon activation the components establishing yonder gate tear into our origin. Yet to anchour themselves, they find purchase not in a place but a person. A being of power. An Everlasting dragon, perhaps, or the child of a Lord." His implication was clear. "Only the mighty suffice. Likewise, the device attempts to counterbalance by anchouring a being on this side also. The interaction of various forces switches them. Zeref did not intend for it. He never realised because he could not test the device."

An introspective silence followed. Priscilla looked upon Eclipse in a new light again. Not only was it Zeref's masterpiece, it inadvertedly set her free.

A quiet question from Wendy broke the silence: "So someone else landed here?"

"So it would seem," Priscilla agreed. "Though it does not quite make sense yet. Us dragons and Quelaan make three, yet the device was only activated twice." She could not quite wrap her head around how this was supposed to work. It felt like the answer was on the tip of her tongue, but it eluded her still. In the end she decided it did not matter for now. "Regardless, we ought to demolish this contraption. Playing with time is ever inadvisable, especially if one employs a device of another, greater mind's make."

Kalameet snorted; a puff of smoke blossomed from his nostrils, but he did not challenge her statement beyond that. Meanwhile, Precht nodded his agreement. Wendy hesitated before doing the same. No one had to know and no one would know. Priscilla addressed her fellow dragon again: "Kalameet, will thou dismantle it?"

"Dost thou feareth failure?" he challenged, although he already rose before Eclipse. Her answer mattered little. Priscilla chuckled over the attempted banter, though.

"Not quite. Thy powers art most precise, a fine knife that is better suited than a hammer."

"Thou took ample inspiration from lesser beings."

So saying, Kalameet's gaze began to sink into Eclipse. Everyone could feel reality shudder as the device was expertly cut apart at the seams. Kalameet severed connections and steel began to dissolve into mist. The twelve golden keyholes wavered before collapsing, a link to the celestial spirit world broken.

Then Precht and Wendy tensed. Priscilla noticed instantly, but none of their warnings were spoken in time. The glimmering Lacrimas lining the gate discharged in an explosion of light. The released energy surged through dispersing spell-lattices, just moments before they vanished. The gate hummed to life for but a moment... and they all felt the same pressure again. They all felt something of fire and darkness passing nearby. A sense of eternal winter took its place right after, emptiness and loneliness. Insanity, perhaps. Moments later it was lost in time.

She realised what happened just a moment too late. Priscilla's legs gave out and she sunk to her knees, burying her face in her hands. She had no words for the colossal mistake just committed. The wound in time kept pulsating weakly around them, too.

When Wendy nudged her after a short while, asking what happened, she could not even meet her gaze. "Tis my fault," she whispered. "Stupid, stupid Priscilla! If I just gave it more thought! The flow of time is convoluted in Lordran and the device was only activated twice throughout its entire existence. Of course the presence of three people transpositioned implies a future activation!"

"Hold, what about the fourth?"

"There is no fourth," Precht answered in her stead. "From what I gathered, the third arrival just came through." He frowned thoughtfully. "Would the odd flow of time even allow to change arrival times?"

"Indeed. T'was I who just passed through from the other side." Despite it all, she managed a small if mirthless smile. "It seems the fabric of time in Earthland is less sturdy than thou assumed."

"Hm."

It was her fault. A woman who went through hardship and became a better person was now gone. Sent into this hellish place Priscilla called her origin, bereft of family and friends. This was wrong, it was not fair. And it was her fault. How could she undo this? Travel to Lordran was infeasible at best, she simply could not afford the risk of never returning. Or to be set upon by the Lords, having left Ariamis' painting.

Another pulse of strained time echoed into her gloomy thoughts. A sound almost like the clink of glass on glass broke the silence. All four of them perked up from their own musings, Wendy the most confused.

"What is this?" she questioned while space around them continued to warp. She could feel it like Priscilla and Kalameet could, but lacked the frame of reference to understand.

Contrary to the dragons' expectations, Precht understood. Well enough to explain, at that: "This is time out of tune. See these welts over there, as if the wall were layered over itself? There are theories that time and space are linked. If you distort one, the other follows to an extent. We just partially activated a time travel device, tearing a hole in the endless stream of time. It tries to self-correct and close up. I saw similar phenomena when Mavis and I devised Fairy Sphere. Only this time it seems more erratic."

"Likely because the fabric of time is sturdier here," Priscilla ventured thoughtfully. "So a reaction to a breach would be stronger." Considering that her past self just passed by, the latent, reality-bending might of a dragon may also affect it. But something Precht just said gave her pause. "Hold, if time is straining...."

She was interrupted by a sound akin to cloth tearing. Space turned inside out for a moment, up became down, light and darkness reversed. Priscilla beheld every moment of this place since the beginning of time, all in the span of an instant. Even her perfect memory could only grasp a handful of impressions beside the yawning void that first was; Wendy and Precht likely failed to remember anything at all, both of them going to their knees with bleeding eyes and ears.

And then, without so much as a noise, the cavern was filled with people. A trail of dispersing Ethernano surrounded the group; they held hands, encircling the four of them. Only a single space was open among the exhausted and bruised bodies.

Priscilla stared at her Fairies, just like they stared at her. They were there, all of them. Makarov, Natsu, Lucy, Mirajane, everyone. Only Erza was amiss, long since returned.

It was the master who overcame her surprise first. Her smile was earnest this time. "Welcome home, everyone."

Silence answered her.

"The hell am I looking at?" Laxus drawled in the end, more confused than annoyed. Makarov by his side was still taking in the sight, giving his grandson the chance to keep going: "Isn't that the old fart we beat up earlier? With our Master. And a dragon. You know that guy, Natsu?"

"Beats me. He doesn't smell familiar. Hey Pris, hey Wendy!"

The Dragonslayer let go of Lucy's and Gray's hands to wave with a grin. Then he sniffed again and turned to Wendy. "Whoa, you look awful." Helpful hands were slapped away as the annoyed blunette glowered at him. Natsu's eyes narrowed while Wendy pressed both hands to her temples and started to heal the damage. "Actually, you smell different, too. And what's with the scales?"

"...Natsu. As happy as I am to see you well, I just had all of time explode in my face. Please, a minute."

"Oh, sure... what's that mean?"

Others were also asking questions, some about where they were, some about Acnologia, others about the slowly rising Precht. Wendy tended to him after she was done with herself, earning a few words of gratitude. Priscilla spent that time summarising their brief vacation in time.

"Unfortunately, it has been three and a half years since your disappearance," she closed. The uproar was immediate and went ignored, Priscilla just raised her voice. "The worst estimate was a decade, so this is less awful than it could have been. I had your belongings stored at my place and everyone helped look after your pets."

Especially Levy breathed a sigh of relief; her cat was eight years old now, Priscilla remembered that well.

"That said, worry not about Erza. She returned on an alternate route, although it took her a bit longer than three years." It was then that Priscilla realised Eclipse must have taken Erza as well, which explained Fairy Sphere's instability. She did not let that stop her, though. "Now, if I may make introductions: over here is a fellow dragon, Kalameet." Who completely ignored the smattering of greetings and waves. "And this is Precht Gaebolg, former master of Fairy Tail and Grimoire Heart, and now a famous member of the Bureau of Magic Development."

The second announcement drew mostly confusion. Priscilla smiled leniently and waved off inquiries. "We can speak later. For now, you are all exhausted. It is time to bring you home. Precht, Wendy, would either of you wish to join us?"

She did not even bother asking Kalameet. Wendy hesitated, but Precht shook his head immediately. "I would merely intrude. Although I may drop in sometime this week, if time permits."

"I should look after Flare and Yukino, too," Wendy added right after. The crowd around them allowed both to leave and made a great deal of space for Kalameet.

"So," Gray asked while looking around the empty cavern. Eclipse long since vanished. "Where are we? And how do we get home?"

"Below Crocus, and easily." Priscilla threw him a cheeky grin and began to channel Ethernano. "Three and a half years were a decent amount of time to learn." Her spell circle formed all around them. Before completing the spell, Priscilla inclined her head toward Precht. "Until next time." And then they were off; only a moment passed before the lot of them stood in Magnolia, right in front of the guildhall.

"Fascinating," Makarov murmured. He leaned heavily on his cane and Mira. Just about everyone was leaning on someone else, only Laxus stayed standing on his own.

Priscilla paid no mind. She stepped over Juvia and Gray to push open the door with a shout: "I have returned and so have our lost wizards!"

Her voice echoed through the entire building. Everyone in the taproom was standing at once, their cheers not quite drowning out the pitter-patter of feet carrying others there from the entire building.

Their lost lambs wandered inside and were urged to sit. Elfman cried, twirling his big sister around. Jet and Droy bowled Levy and Gajeel over in their exuberance, hugging both into the ground. Even Mystogan joined them for a while, clapping Laxus' shoulder. Drinks and food were brought aplenty, devolving into a party within minutes. A measured one though, what with everyone being too tired to fight. On the other hand, word of their return spread to all of Magnolia as well. They had an impromptu festival on their hands before long.

Priscilla could not help but smile over the merry atmosphere. She even managed to forget her own folly for a time. It was as if they never left.

"I'm almost done with my studies," she heard Elfman tell his sister. He made the white coat he took to wearing flutter for effect, too. Only to lose any semblance of grandiosity when she began to pet his head.

The Thunder Legion and Laxus were conferring with Mystogan about recent events, she noticed. Right next to them, Cana and Gildarts clacked their mugs together without a care in the world. Then there were Natsu and Lucy, surrounded by a small crowd of amused guildmates. Macao had a finger right under the younger man's nose, grinning like a loon. "When were you thinking to tell us you're an Etherious?"

"Wait, what?" Lucy was about as surprised as her boyfriend. Priscilla had to chuckle as she left the human members to explain what took place earlier.

Her gaze wandered over Levy, who congratulated Alzack and Bisca on their marriage. Gajeel hovered nearby, absently growling responses to whatever Juvia told him. Gray sat with them as well.

Then, during a lull in conversation, an unfamiliar voice drew Priscilla's attention: "Is this truly necessary?"

Heads turned to Seilah, prim and pristine in a brand new maid dress. Mavis kept pushing her into the taproom. "Absolutely!" she cheered, completely unrepentant while the flustered Etherious fidgeted. "You look great!"

A number of wolf whistles from the crowd conveyed general agreement.

Nobody missed her obvious horns, however. They were ochre, almost golden, and thicker than her arms. Natsu tensed for a moment, only to relax when nobody else made any hostile motions. Then he stepped out of his small bubble with a big grin. "Heya! Nice to meetcha, I'm Natsu. Welcome to the guild!"

"Huh. I...." Seilah trailed off the moment she focussed on him. Clearly recognising a fellow Etherious, she was stumped. "You, you are-"

"Natsu, I just said that." He clapped her shoulder jovially, then left the gaping woman to stare after him. His next destination was Mavis, who waved cheerfully. "Did you bring her here?"

"Ayup. She didn't have anywhere to go, so I thought, August needs a nanny anyway. Why not hit two birds with one stone?" Mavis beamed while the woman in question grumbled something unintelligible. Natsu laughed.

"Heh, sounds like fun. Also, who's August? Did someone else have a kid?" He glanced around between the various older members, but no one gave any indication. Then a small bundle slammed into his side with a cheerful trill. Natsu immediately swooped him up. "Oh, so you're...."

This time it was for him to trail off, staring at August with wide eyes. The boy laughed at being held in the air, kicking his legs until he stood on a magical platform. "I'm August!" he said excitedly.

"That he is," Mavis agreed while gently taking him from Natsu's arms. Her expression had grown pensive for a reason Priscilla did not know. Then a spark of Ethernano had the doors shut and sealed off the area. "And seeing that you can't keep the secret anyway," Mavis teased with a hint of levity, "I better get this over with now. He is my son, and your nephew. I know you can tell."

An air of confusion followed her announcement. How would Natsu know the identity of August's father? She thankfully did not have to ask, seeing how Jet made the same inquiry. Natsu was still too confused to respond, but Seilah managed to regain her composure: "Etherious can tell their creator apart instinctively. Apparently, the same is true of his descendants."

"I was meaning to keep this secret tight," Mavis apologised to the quietened room. She held her son protectively. "Just me, Pris, Precht, and Warrod. But it was bound to come out eventually, I guess."

"I don't really care about that." Natsu made a dismissive motion before pointing at August, who grabbed his finger. "He's a kid, not Zeref. I don't get how he's my nephew."

Even Mavis was flabbergasted by his easy acceptance. Then she started giggling and set her son down. "Oh, Natsu. Never change. You are in effect his brother. And that makes you my brother-in-law as well. I never gave my name, did I? Mavis Vermillion-Dragneel, at your service." She curtsied, then leapt to embrace Natsu.

With the serious mood ruined, the entire guild congregated on them. A lot of curiousity followed, but Mavis carefully ignored the more intrusive questions about Zeref. Priscilla kindly took some of them off of her. The guild took to accepting August well enough, but Makarov had to hold a short speech on keeping his ancestry a secret.

Once this was all done and Lucy found herself having to entertain Mavis while August led Natsu around by the hand, Priscilla allowed herself to relax. This went better than expected. For some reason however, Seilah sought refuge near her.

"It will be alright," Priscilla soothed the Etherious. "You will fit right in before you know it. It was the same for me." This earned her a mean look but little else. Her expression softened further. "My apologies that it had to be this way."

Before she could respond, a cheerful Jet appeared between them, one arm slung around Seilah's shoulder. "Bah, stop it with the heavy stuff already. We're having a party here!" He ignored the distasteful look the Etherious threw him. "Besides, Mavis is right: the dress looks great on you." Distaste washed away in favour of embarassment. "Alicia can show you the ropes in no time, don't worry!"

"Ah." The blonde had been nearby and hesitated, glancing between them. "Shouldn't Mira, now that she's back?"

Having heard her name, Mirajane turned their way and waved; Seilah took a single look at her and fainted.

Jet caught the unconcious woman with a shout, just as befuddled as the two barmaids. Priscilla picked her up gently and explained: "Having enjoyed effective immortality, a Take Over wizard keyed to Etherious is their worst nightmare made manifest. Do be careful around her until she gets to know you, yes?"

Mira nodded at once. "Of course, can do. Everything for my cute coworker."

They shared a chuckle over that and the party continued.

Despite the merriment, Lucy could not help but worry. She had not even managed to come to terms with losing three and a half years when they learned she was dating an Etherious demon. Moreover, Natsu was directly related to Zeref himself. That Zeref was alive until recently, she already knew. Silver linings and all that.

Regardless, her thoughts kept racing throughout the evening. Priscilla may have stored her belongings, but she no longer had a place to stay. The same was true for just about everyone else; only Makarov owned the house he lived in. Natsu and Happy sidestepped the issue by having built a little cottage just outside of town. Lucy spent most of her free moments planning her next steps; she needed to get back on her feet and quick. She refused to depend on someone else's hospitality for any longer than necessary. Nobody would mind hosting her as a half dozen offers made quite clear, but that did not deter Lucy.

As she ran through her options, the most tempting one tied closely to her cheerful boyfriend. Natsu was the heart of the party despite it all, wherever he took all that energy. They had only been dating a few months, but Lucy could not stop wondering. Would he mind? Was it a good idea? The fact her mind kept tallying the costs did not help; not only was it the most romantic option she could think of, it was also the cheapest.

In the end, after a drag from her tankard, Lucy bid a chattering Levy to wait and wandered over to where Natsu was playing with August. "Do you have a moment?"

"Sure, what's up?"

Lucy motioned awkwardly, hesitant. Maybe a little embarassed. "I was thinking. Do you mind if I stay with you for a while? Maybe, I mean, maybe if things go well I could move in?"

Natsu paused. He had focussed mainly on his nephew thus far, but Lucy's question distracted him thoroughly. August seemed to realise playtime was over, curiously looking between the two adults. They had locked gazes, both well aware that this was a big step.

Then Natsu's surprise faded. He shrugged and gave a thumbs up. "Sure. That fine with you, Happy?"

"Aye!" the Exceed cheered from the table next to them, a half-eaten fish in his paws. "But it will be kinda small for three people."

"Eh, we'll make it work."

Lucy's heart fluttered at how easily he went along with her. How could anyone be this pure? She impulsively leaned forward to kiss him. Sparks showered the both of them, courtesy of August. And maybe the catcalling flustered Lucy a bit, or a lot, but she could not care less. Natsu really was worth admiring; he saw the world in much simpler terms than she did.

It turned out soon after that Happy was right. Their cottage had no room for her, at least not as it were. Not to mention that it lay dormant for three years.

Lucy stared at her temporary, mayhaps permanent home with an awkward grin. "Who would have thought this is where I end up," she joked, mostly with herself. Lucy was tired after the ordeal and then the party. But sleeping in a dust-covered bed did not appeal, either.

"Come on," Natsu soothed her brightly, "it's not so bad. We just slap off some dust here and clean up tomorrow. Maybe Levy can... hey, how about you let Scorpio blow all that dust away?"

"That's... actually a good idea." Lucy conceded the point immediately, wondering why she did not think of it. Though tired, her magical reserves were good by now. She gingerly removed Scorpio's key and called for him. "Open, gate of th-aaaaah!"

Only to be dogpiled under a near dozen Celestial Spirits. Virgo and Leo, Aquarius and Scorpio, Cancer, Libra, Pisces, Sagittarius, even Lyra, Plue, and Crux were there. Horologium and Taurus stood nearby, flanking Capricorn and Aries.

Buried under far too many bodies, Lucy could only wiggle in distress while various happy greetings washed over her. When no one made any attempt to free her, she sighed and felt for her magic again. A swift buck of her hips later, the entire crowd went flying. Finally free to breathe, Lucy rolled onto her back.

"Really, you guys."

Her annoyance already faded; they had not seen her in years, the warm welcome was more than a little touching. "Not everyone at once, please."

"Will you punish us for our transgressions, Princess?"

"No," she deadpanned. If Virgo was disappointed, she did not show it. Natsu grinned over her plight in the background. Lucy rose to her feet, threw one look at Capricorn waiting to meet her, and raised a hand. "I know it's been a lot longer for you all, but I am barely staying awake as is. How about we do this-" A massive yawn cut her off there. "-tomorrow? I just wanted Scorpio to help dust off the place."

She made a vague motion for Natsu's cottage, which prompted a lot of scrutiny. Aquarius sneered and muttered about indignity of some form. Virgo and Lyra began to whisper with each other, calculating looks thrown her and Natsu's way. All the rest seemed equally more interested in her relationship upgrade than anything else. Meanwhile, Scorpio laughed. He gave her a wink and lumbered forward. "Sure thing, Lucy. But you guys probably wanna have someone look at that. Place looks like I could blow it over with a single breath."

"Please don't."

Her deadpan prompted more laughter. Thankfully, Scorpio regulated the storm he produced with his metal tail. A strong gust flowed through the entire building, carrying a cloud of dust out the windows. Before he could even announce being done, Virgo was through the door while dual-wielding dusters.

"Worry not, Princess. Everything shall be in perfect condition by the time you wake."

Lucy just heaved a sigh and indulged her. Natsu and Happy did not seem to mind either way. Her friends returned to their own world in ones and twos, each after wishing her a good night. Excepting Aquarius, but even she held a rare smile.

Soon enough it was just the three of them again. Then Happy flew off with his basket to sleep in the tiny living room. Virgo being there to deliver pets may be related, but Lucy could not care less. She did not question the gleaming nightgown already laid out for her, either. Instead she just imitated Natsu, shucked off her clothes, and climbed under the sheets. It was a tight fit with the two of them, but pleasantly warm in exchange. Lucy snuggled against Natsu and was off to dreamland before he even wrapped an arm around her.

She hardly even regretted her choices in the morning. Only a little bit, upon realising that things may move a bit faster than she was comfortable with. Natsu all but leered at her naked self, but restrained himself to just a possessive hug, a searing kiss, and a few cheeky gropes. That alone almost changed Lucy's mind, but the faint memory of a metric ton of work yet to be done deterred her in the end.

After getting dressed and enjoying a quick breakfast, courtesy of Priscilla coming by to bring their belongings, Lucy got started. While she met with her spirit friends however, Natsu wandered off; it took a while for him to return, at which point the general catching up was over. Her friends already celebrated in the Celestial Spirit world that past night. The lightshow of her forming a contract with Capricorn drew a whistle from nearby, however.

"Damn," Gildarts said, "I never thought I'd get to see actual spirits. Hey there, folks!" He joined them with a cheerful grin, Natsu and Happy right behind. The spirits greeted him in turn, though notably less enthusiastic than they did Lucy. "Weird spot to have your party or whatever, though. Perfectly fine guildhall thataway."

"Have you not heard?" Loke inquired with mock seriousness. Lucy batted his shoulder, but could not stop him from spilling the beans. He cheekily pointed at his summoner. "Lucy is moving in with Natsu."

"Oh. Right. There was something about that last night, wasn't there?" Gildarts scratched his chin in thought, then laughed. "Hah, can't remember much. No idea where my baby girl got that iron stomach from, but she can take more than me!"

No one acknowledged Lucy's halfway aborted pout, nor Natsu's embarassment. He yelped when Gildarts clapped his shoulder, accidentally slamming him into the ground. "But now I get why you want to expand. Place is too small for two. Or two and a half, rather," he corrected with a glance to Happy. "Hm. Go get Cana, will you? If I'm building for a woman, the place should have a woman's touch to it."

"That's awfully nice of you," Lucy thanked him while the Exceed flew off. She felt a little bashful, but also worried about the bill. Expecting a guildmate to work for free was just about unthinkable to her. Construction was expensive. "Money may be a bit of a problem."

"Pft, money." He waved her off with a grin. "I've got money out the ass, don't worry. Best builder wizard in the country means something, y'know? Just leave it to me."

"I...." She wanted to protest, maybe insist on some other kind of recompense. Then Natsu wrapped an arm around her shoulder. His reassuring smile told her exactly where such an argument would go. Lucy slumped against him. "Alright, but please don't make it too big. I had enough of big mansions."

Just then, Happy returned carrying an enthusiastic drunkard. Cana dropped right next to her father, hips cocked and an evaluating look in place. "I heard you need some help building," she drawled coyly before saluting. "Sure thing. Now go do couple things, we're having it handled. Come on, old man, we're burning sunshine!"

"I'm not that old yet!"

Father and daughter cheerfully went to work dismantling the place, bantering back and forth. Natsu and Lucy were forgotten after being effectively kicked out. They stared at each other momentarily, only to break into laughter. It was just too funny; Lucy did not even know why.

As they began to walk away and into the forest, Natsu slowly grew more serious. "I'm sorry I didn't tell you about the Etherious thing before," he began after a while. "I didn't really tell anyone, just Happy. Mira found out on her own some time ago 'cause, y'know." He made a vague motion with his hand and mimicked a hissing sound. Not particularly accurate, but Lucy got that he meant her Take Over.

"It is alright," she assured him. "I was mostly just surprised about it." Considering her own situation, she really could not throw stones. And thinking of that, now may as well be the time to put her constant struggle to rest. Lucy fell behind her boyfriend for a bit, but now she caught up and grasped his arm. "Actually, there is something I have to tell you, too."

Much to her relief, he was not mad about Lucy and Priscilla keeping the secret of Eclipse. The dragonslayers' origin gave him pause, though. Lucy explained in as much detail as she could while they strolled through the woods, from her mother's letter to Zeref's plan.

She was just about finished when a teasing lilt interrupted them: "Now look at that, a romantic walk in the forest?"

True to form, Levy accosted them with a sly grin. But also with Gajeel in tow. He loomed behind her, though only with his resting scowl and not the aggressive one. Lucy arched a brow at the sight of her friends. "More like you are mad that we stole your idea."

"As if." Levy sauntered over and playfully slapped her shoulder. "You couldn't make this walk half as romantic as I can."

"Oh yeah?"

"Oh yes."

They kept repeating the same lines back and forth for a while at that point. The men merely shrugged at each other until Lucy stopped their playfight. Sighing, the taller woman glanced between them. "Well, good thing either way. Gajeel should hear this, too."

"Nah," Natsu denied. Lucy immediately turned back to him, as did Levy, but he ignored them both. "Long story short, they taught us Dragonslayer magic to kill Acnologia, and Lucy's grand-grand-whatever-grandmother sent us through a time travel machine. We're actually like four hundred years from the past."

Gajeel frowned through the explanation. While Levy's expression kept growing more incredulous, his remained much the same. When Natsu finished, he merely grunted. "Huh. Explains a few things, I guess." He fell silent afterward. Both women stared at him in abject confusion, prompting a deeper scowl. "What?"

Lucy wet her lips cautiously, uncertain how to phrase the question. She spent months agonising over this information and he just... took it like nothing was wrong? "Are you not surprised? At all?

Gajeel shrugged. "Kinda, but what does it matter? We're here now and I wanna beat that asshole's face in anyway."

He stared at her as if to challenge the statement. Lucy could only heave a sigh, though Levy chuckled and tip-toed to peck Gajeel's cheek. "You're such a dork."

"They both are," Lucy quipped. Natsu grinned along.

However, once they said their goodbyes and separated, Gajeel wordlessly wandered off. Levy quickly sped up to keep pace, surprised and a little worried. "Where are you going?" No answer. "Gajeel?"

He still gave no indicator of having heard her. His feet carried him to a nearby lake, where he sat down to stare at the still surface. Levy's bewildered stare received no reaction. She glanced between the lake and her boyfriend, then back to where Lucy and Natsu vanished. Sighing, she settled next to Gajeel. "You can just say that it bothers you, you know?"

"Get off my back."

There was no heat in his growl. Levy giggled softly and shook her head at his antics. "Boys. Come here." Reaching out, she gently pulled him backward. Gajeel let himself be moved until his head rested on her lap, buffered by that unruly mane of his. Levy gently stroked his spiky hair. "I'm here for you," she reassured him, "as long as you need me."

At first Gajeel only snorted, but he soon closed his eyes and simply enjoyed Levy's ministrations. By herself, the blunette admitted that this was not quite what she imagined this outing to be. Getting to spend some tender time of another sort with him however, that was perfectly fine.

Meanwhile, a fellow blunette wandered Magnolia on her lonesome. Juvia's mind was on similar subjects as Levy's. Or rather, she kept stewing on the issue Lucy raised for her the previous night. Hearing that her friend moved in with Natsu, she realised that she wanted the same thing. Quite viscerally at that. Juvia wanted to be close to Gray, to cook for him, to sleep in the same bed, all these things she read about but never thought she would get to do herself.

Unfortunately, taking a step back and asking Cana for a second opinion made it very clear that Gray was not ready for this yet. He and Natsu were different in that regard.

Now she was looking for a place to stay. Priscilla hosted them all and did not mind doing so again, but Juvia did not want to impose. Fairy Tail already gave her so, so much that she refused to be a burden on them for any reason. Unfortunately, her old haunt was since rented to someone else and she found few affordable places thus far. The fact she cut back whenever one of her guildmates had interest in one probably did not help, but Juvia still felt a little guilty.

"Oh my, are you house hunting as well?"

Mirajane's voice snapped her out of her musings. Juvia's gaze focussed on the other woman, whose smile was infectious. "I am. Not much luck so far, but I'm sure it will be fine. How about you?" After a momentary pause, she realised her guildmate did not even have to find a place of her own. "Actually, didn't you stay with Elfman?"

"I did," Mira confirmed, "but still. He may be older than me now, but I am still the big sister. And I am not going to force my little brother to provide for me. Not to mention, I think he is seeing someone." The last part was whispered cospiratorially. "So I rather he have his privacy." Then, all smiles, she went on without giving Juvia a chance to ask questions: "I actually found a nice place earlier, but it is a tad big for just me. So I was thinking of rooming with someone, assuming anyone is interested. Cana comes to mind, but, well." She motioned for the city surrounding them. "I haven't seen her since yesterday."

Juvia nodded along. The idea made sense. She immediately wanted to ask about being part of this, but something held her back. Why should Mirajane want to share a place with her of all people? So instead of asking, she ventured carefully: "Did you have any expectations for that? Or preferences, more like?"

"Hmmm. Well, having a boytoy nearby would be nice," she joked while licking her lips suggestively. Juvia averted her gaze, prompting a chuckle. "But no, anyone is fine with me. I doubt there will be trouble."

"Then... how about, well... me?"

A flood of doubt followed the hesitant proposal. Mira needed a moment to work through the implications, enough time for Juvia to open her mouth.

"Oh, absolutely!"

But before she could start babbling, take back the request, or anything else, Mira already waltzed over it. The purity of her beaming smile was almost blinding. Meanwhile, Juvia's mouth hung open uselessly, all words dead on her lips. Tentatively, she began to smile as well. "I would like that a lot," she finished softly.

"I would, too. Happy to have you," Mira agreed. Then her smile grew mischievous. "We just need to figure something out for when one of us brings a date over. I would not want to intrude on you and Gray~"

Juvia flushed immediately. Nonetheless, she was so incredibly happy that the embarassment faded within moments. Fitting in to the point someone else could imagine sharing a home with her, it was like a dream come true. Even if it was not Gray, she still felt like crying tears of joy.

The sudden and short downpour that soaked just about everyone in Magnolia, Mira would tease her about for a while.

Just like Juvia, Lucy, and Levy, all the returned members began to settle back in. Though still jarred by how years passed like nothing for them, it felt like they never left. Even with their return however, fines paid for collateral damage remained at an all-time low. Ultear Malkovich was their saviour, quickly exalted to an honourary member of Fairy Tail. As word of their return spread, various old friends came to Magnolia to welcome them back.

Unfortunately, it was not just friends who sought to pay them a visit.
 
7.6 The Dragon King
Less than two weeks passed until Earthland's nightmare arose once more. Powerful nostrils flared as he took in the scent of his prey. Jet black wings propelled an equally dark body, scales lined by errant streaks of dark, gleaming blue.

An hour after July 7th began, Acnologia fully awakened. At noon he closed in on the area he first felt the power that, to his mind, only a dragon could possess. The hundred thousand humans closeby went ignored, as a god did not concern himself with the matters of ants. The vermin attempted a few bombardments of various magics, but it slid off Acnologia's scales like water.

Slamming into the ground with a challenging growl, he sniffed the air again. Just like before it smelled of Igneel's prince. Another, almost familiar scent mixed with the plethora of traces on this hill, but he disregarded it. Had the dragon king paid more attention, he may have recognised the remainder of Grandine's princess.

As it were, he had no chance to do so. A boulder half his size hammered into Acnologia's flank. The force of impact sent splintered stone everywhere, projectile obliterated. His head snapped around to the human city and a puff of breath destroyed the boulder coming straight for his face. Secondary lids protected his eyes from dust while the irate dragon made to lumber forward, only to stumble. No one saw amidst the slowly dispersing cloud, but he knew. His hind leg was dented, sprained by the previous impact.

The impossibility of this injury gave Acnologia pause. Long enough for a third boulder to graze his right wing. Had he not stumbled sideway, he would have lost it entirely. The membrane was strained before snapping back painfully. The dragon king screamed his anger at the defenders and propelled himself upward. Another boulder flew by right underneath him.

As he corkscrewed upward, any notion of punishing the vermin faded away. He saw exactly the strength of their defenses; a dozen giant catapults were adjusting their aim, each one loaded with dozens of these boulders. They rose on magical platforms across the city, hidden underground when he first arrived. Only two had shot at him thus far.

With his wing already damaged and maneuverability hindered, Acnologia decided to mete out punishment later. He had dragons to kill first.

While he raced toward the horizon, another scaled face revealed itself from the cavern he just stood before. Another black dragon, smaller but grander still. Kalameet's growl shook the earth, his unfamiliar scent the only reason Crocus was saved from becoming a battlefield. "Kinslayer," he drawled, insult and judgement alike. His ethereal eye shone in otherworldly orange, the primal calamity's gaze following one bound for death.

For an instant, a pang of worry for his nestling made Kalameet consider pursuit. But he had already set the correct order of events into motion. She stood next to Priscilla and that was enough. He could only snort derisively when the defenders' cheer reached his ears. They thought the beast had fled, never realising they were not even a consideration to him.

In Magnolia meanwhile, Lucy slurped her drink and tried not to groan. She was sore in places she never thought she could be sore. Then again, she felt great at the same time. She tried her best to ignore an adult Wendy's coy grin, well aware the dragonslayer knew what she was up to last night. At least she kept quiet about it. Gajeel did too, thankfully.

"It is still weird that you are suddenly my age," she told the blunette and heaved a sigh. "But I guess it puts into perspective how long we were gone."

"Quite," she agreed. A band of aquamarine scales gleamed on her temples when she pushed her hair back in place. "Although much more than that changed over the years. I am glad to see you alive and well nonetheless."

"Aww!" Levy leaned over and threw an arm over Wendy's shoulder. "We love you, too! Same for your friends!" The dragonslayer allowed Levy's presence. She was right, too: Yukino shily talked to Mirajane and Seilah while Flare animatedly spoke with Natsu. August was sat on her lap, cuddled against the ever-warm woman. Bisca nursed little Asuka a table along, fussed over by Alzack and Makarov; the baby was only weeks old, barely born when they returned.

Into this tranquil moment, a surge of Ethernano ran. Lucy could feel it crashing all over Magnolia like a wave, forming a dome of sorts. Priscilla and Mavis stormed in from the back a moment later, but they were too late. The guild snapped alert as the ground shook. The very air began to shake as well. And then everything became light. Lucy flew back from the force of whatever hit them, a distant cluster of Ethernano. The earth rumbled and something heavy slammed into the ground next to her.

When her vision adjusted, Lucy could only stare in shock. The guildhall collapsed around her. Tons of rubble hovered above them, quickly pushed aside by Priscilla's magic. Flickering shields died around the building, all of Fairy Tail alive.

But the town around them was in ruins. Every house devastated, every person on the streets annihilated. No, not everyone. The runes Freed placed so long ago threw sparks and died as she watched, sustaining shields that saved a few. So, so few. All the people she met on a daily basis, the merchants and tailors, their homes, all gone in an instant. Wiped away.

Lucy had to force her gaze away from the horrible sight, up into the sky where he awaited. Black as the night and larger than life. Acnologia circled above them with a scream of challenge. The sight of him made her legs give out entirely. Lucy crashed to the ground, unable to avert her eyes.

Oblivion came after them once more.

In the dead silence, the guild stared at the dragon above. Hopelessness overcame her, the despair of impending doom. Instinct screamed at Lucy to flee while she still could.

Then it was all drowned out by something foreign. It settled over Lucy like a searing blanket, subsumed her until all she felt was all-consuming rage. Her gaze slowly fell down again, to Priscilla. Her guild master stood tall, tail curled around itself and expression a rictus of fury.

When she screamed out at the dragon up high, the earth shook. Her fury drove despair from Lucy's very soul, igniting her own anger. She stumbled to her feet, growling. Then she shrieked, joining Priscilla. Wendy's voice joined theirs a moment later, then Juvia, Gray, Levy, Gajeel. One by one, Fairy Tail's roar rose and reverberated across the land. The only ones silent were Seilah and August, the former clutching the latter and fleeing to safety with him. She grabbed Asuka along the way, quietly soothing the wailing baby.

Their challenge was answered when Acnologia aligned in the air. His roar shook the heavens, only to be repelled when Natsu joined them. Then, as if in response to his wrath, the sunlight faded. For just a moment, pitch blackness covered everyone and everything. Merely Priscilla's and Wendy's glowing eyes spent light below, as did the gleaming pair up high.

When the sun reignited, Natsu was wreathed in black flames. His slitted pupils were trained on the swooping dragon as if to take his challenge alone. He did not have to. All the rubble rose once more and shot off to bombard Acnologia, who had to abort his attack to dodge. Some still clipped his bad wing and a foreleg, adding more small injuries. The barrage of spells that followed had no effect, but it gave them time. And Lucy needed it to get a hold of her rage.

So many people hurt, her friends in pain. She refused to allow it. She did not accept it. She screamed again, in body and soul alike. And from within, her magic answered; from the depths of her blood it drew on all her line ever knew. Zodiac gates aligned around her. Not one or two, but all twelve. She needed no call, for they arrived on their own, as one. All the zodiacs, even those she was not contracted to. They stood as honour guard while Lucy screamed at the heavens.

"Oh zodiacs that are my birthright, I call upon thee! Cast open the gates and grant me audience with the Eternal King Unto Heaven! I implore thee, grant me the strength to strike down this abomination!"

Her words echoed through the boundaries of reality, she knew. For a moment Lucy stood before the Starlit Throne once more, staring up at the spirit king. A god in His own right. And He smiled upon her. His light shone onto Lucy and filled her very being; it soaked into her skin, permeated flesh and bone, all the way into the deepest parts of her soul. "Your wish is granted," His voice echoed across the sky. "Cast open the starlit gate."

But Lucy did not. Another circle opened, unfitting yet oh so true. The very base of her own technique, unaligned to any spirit. Under the force of her will it overlayed with the thirteenth gate. Time crawled to a halt as all her spirit friends' expressions changed to surprise and even horror. But He merely nodded. The light that since filled her was not conducted as it ever had been before. No, it began to manifest as gleaming armour and a greatsword the size of Lucy herself. She lifted it effortlessly, its edge rending space.

"Star Dress! Celestial Spirit King!"

She roared the conclusion of her spell, unheard amidst Fairy Tail's wrath. No one paid mind to her unparalleled feat. With His might came knowledge, allowing Lucy to propel herself heavenward. A slowly mending wound in space followed her sword's ascent.

She was not alone. Four leatherey wings sprouted from a spell circle on Wendy's back, lined with sapphire scales. With the instincts of dragons she claimed the sky as was her birthright, tutored by Carla for the past years. Priscilla rose with her by the same spell on a pair of white gossamer wings. Natsu followed right after, carried on wide, obsidian pinions. The air hissed and warped around them all.

Soon there were dozens of each of them. Mavis remained static on the ground, channelling her illusions into filling the sky with replicas of her friends. Acnologia may be invulnerable to magic, but his senses could not tell fake and reality apart. Magical and physical projectiles kept peppering the beast's resilient hide to no effect.

Acnologia reared back for another mighty beam. He aimed at the tightest cluster and extinguished them along the tip of a distant mountain. He turned to continue his work until the true enemies were destroyed. But in doing so, he never saw Laxus coming from below. He never expected a mere man to so much as injure him. And yet the mighty punch to his good wing taught the dragon king a painful lesson. The membrane barely held against this impact, strained painfully. A quiet crack, unheard by all, told of the underlying bone being broken. Laxus' hand was also, but he cared naught for it.

Acnologia whirled around in mid-air to deliver a devastating spinkick, sending the vermin back from whence he came. Any lesser man would have died from the ground-shattering impact; even Laxus was out of the fight with just that much. But the damage was done and what was more, he gave the dragons time to reach.

Wendy and Natsu rammed into Acnologia's wing like vultures, clawing at the vulnerable membrane. It tore under their irate assault, well and truly impairing the dragon king. He shook them off, only to have divine sword and scythe slice through the other wing. Acnologia screamed in anger more than pain on his descent.

Halfway down, Lucy appeared by his side. Time dilated under her will, slowing the dragon's fall to a crawl. A momentum otherwise unimaginable propelled her kick into Acnologia's face, changing his trajectory. He did not fall on the ruins of Magnolia, but rather slammed into the mountain he damaged earlier. Tens of thousands of tons of stone rained down on the beast. Lucy let time resume, carefully rolling her aching foot.

Silence fell for an instant. All stared at the broken mountain and still rubble. Yet no one believed for even a moment that this much could end the dragon king. True to their expectations, boulders began to shake and a mighty beam shot skyward. It evaporated the rocks and cast away the clouds for dozens of kilometres.

Alas, Acnologia's rage could not hold against that of the guild. Gajeel swept in on the grounded foe, carried by Happy. His metal fists hammered into dragon scales, barely scratching them. Natsu and Wendy descended from above while the beast was distracted, once again tearing chunks out of his wings. Fire and starlight ran deep gouges into Acnologia's back.

Just as his massive tail made to slap Wendy from the air, Lucy darted in again. She spun around herself for momentum and lunged with a scream; her sword cut through Acnologia's scales like a hot knife through butter, removing the tail at its base. To all else she was but a golden blur, already gone before the dragon understood what happened.

Projectiles kept annoying the pained Acnologia from a distance, but the presence of four distinct threats gave him no chance to act against them. Above it all however, Priscilla held back still. She waited for her moment to strike, aware that her stasis field would not work on a being this powerful. No, she and Lucy protected her dragonslayers. This was their purpose after all.

As the dragon king kept raging against their assault, he slowly began to flag. Furious swipes with claws and teeth lost their force. Crushing tackles cost the beast ever more energy as the dragonslayers deftly dodged. The entire area was devastated by the end of it, every single combatant breathing heavily. All of them fought to mobilise just that tiny bit of power to overcome their opposition. Even everlasting anger could only push one so far.

Had it only been three on one, the dragon king would have persevered. Singed, torn, broken he was, but every single one of his opponents had been brutalised. Their protective shells barely held; bruises and small wounds covered their bodies. Wendy favoured her left hand after being smashed through a rock and having the right broken.

That was when Priscilla heralded the end. A deep sense of fear ran through every living being, announcing the presence of death. And then the everpresent scream of anger was amplified. From one moment to the next, the empty sky above Magnolia filled with dragons. All beheld their splendor and all heard their wrathful roar. Not quite real yet undeniably present. They demanded death, retribution, annihilation.

But it was not just the Everlasting dragons.

Heaven and earth shook when Earthland's dragons joined the call, merging their faded powers with that of their greater kin. The dragon king stood frozen once he realised: every dragon he ever slew now glared down at his battered self. Chief among them the kings and queens of the many swarms. King Igneel stood tallest among them, leading the choir of vengeance. Not one, but two dead races screamed down their wrath and let it fill Priscilla. Fairy Tail joined them, as did the few survivors around town.

Only two voices were absent. Mavis had been struck mute by the incorporeal form of Zeref. He appeared before her with all the rest. While the aria of death reached its crescendo, he wordlessly took her hand and pressed a kiss to her lips.

Through the broken earth Priscilla raced, coming straight for the scared dragon. All her being sung, the wrath of her kind channelled through ebony scythe. "Fury of the Fallen!" she roared. "Lifehunt!"

Acnologia recoiled from her, instincts screaming to flee, but it was for naught. The scythe connected, outright ignored his formidable resistances, and cut into his body. The wrath of a hundred thousand dragons, conducted through the greatest of them all. It rampaged through Acnologia, rending his very soul asunder.

Thus the dragon king fell, well and truly dead. Black blood began to leak from his many wounds, tainting the earth.

A deafening silence followed. All eyes lay on what, to them, was a fallen god. Insurmountable he had been in life; even in death many could scarcely believe it was over. Spells faded out as the surge of pure emotion drained away. Spite, anger, and the determination to protect kept them all going beyond their limits. Dragonslayers fell to their knees in exhaustion and so did Lucy. The last vestige of starlight left her body, Star Dress fading. Her memory of the battle was blurry, power too great to comprehend having pulsed through her mortal self.

Her body was numb, as was her heart. The raw emotion keeping them all in the fight left her drained, almost empty. It took many minutes before the first tear pricked at her eye. Many more before it fell. Natsu weakly wrapped an arm around her, supporting Lucy while being supported by her in turn. Wendy and Gajeel were much the same and similar scenes repeated across the ruins of Magnolia.

For Priscilla, this was a day of remembrance and rejoicing. The menace had been ended for good. Yet the price was steep. Thousands of lives, taken in an instant. Her guild remained whole by some miracle, even though they lost most of their guildhall again. Of the town surrounding it, only the foundation was left. Buildings had collapsed wholesale.

Her silent vigil ended before anyone else finished weeping. She could not continue to do nothing, not when there were survivors in need of aid. But just as the giantess began to stride forward, her fairies rose. Wendy stood with them, their determined expression telling Priscilla exactly what they thought. It made her smile, this stoic desire to help. A wave of her hand sent all of them airborne and toward the city. She could clean up the mountain later. Yukino and Flare joined them from the rear lines.

Word of Magnolia's fate spread quickly; just about every wizard guild sent aid in some form of another. Even Jiemma and several of his bulkiest men and women arrived to carry debris. Makarov's son Ivan and his newly founded Raven Tail joined as well, ferrying supplies in their cars. Master Jenny, freshly appointed, brought all surviving members of Blue Pegasus to survey the damage and pitch in with money for rebuilding. They all arrived days before the kingdom's official support, though the sheer amount of men and material Princess Hisui led in had it all be forgiven.

The few hundred survivors were hosted in and around Priscilla's mountain home for the first week. It was a tight fit for the lot of them. Not to mention disconcerting due to the swarm of crows and ravens living around the entire area. Some swore the birds were eyeing them with unnatural intelligence. Others saw them congregate on Acnologia's remains; they did nothing beyond staring at the dead dragon until the Magic Council had him transported away for study.

Rebuilding began in earnest once the railways were repaired. Trains arrived to deliver various goods and people, including a frazzled Gildarts. His reunion with Cana was tearful, as he did not know who made it out before stepping off the train. Mystogan reappeared from his own mission also, apologising for being absent. Erza, Ciaran, and Quelana soon joined them as well, having traveled the continent together with Dusk; it was the first time Priscilla got to meet the erstwhile princess. Her reaction to the ruin was to leap at the nearest construction site and help carry supplies. Her wiry frame belied strength obtained over two decades of travel.

Despite the bleak outlook, Fairy Tail also rebuilt. First there was but a lonely guildhall, but soon more houses grew around it for the members. It did not take much longer for new settlers to arrive, merchants who realised there was a demand for goods. Blacksmiths and tailours followed, as did a variety of others. More came with them as the city grew.

Much to Lucy's initial annoyance, one Jude Heartfilia had a hand in Magnolia's rapid expansion. He offered cheap loans to anyone willing to move there, not to mention free business consultation. Priscilla did not know what the two of them said when her charge went to confront her father about it, but he did not stop doing it. Within two years the man owned a sizable part of Magnolia and the peoples' respect; he even set up the main office of Heartfilia Business Consultation basically next door. Brazen indeed, but successful.

She could not help but smile, looking out at the budding city from the steep hill her home rested under. This, right there, was what the Everlasting dragons failed to understand. No matter how often these lesser beings were crushed underfoot, they always dug themselves back out. They always rebuilt. Such vigor and determination were revitalising to an eternal being such as her. Just like Atlas Flame told her so long ago: their lives were short, yet blazing in their glory.

However, while the world was safer than ever, the many life-or-death struggles left their mark on its people. By the time three years had passed since Acnologia's death, Lucy, Levy, Juvia, and just about any other young woman of her guild had at least one child. Those three in particular each had two and Lucy already carried a third. From what Priscilla gathered, many of her Fairies ended up wondering why they should wait when death could wait at any corner. So they went for it. She was happy for them either way.

Although Wendy deserved her condolences; she apparently tried hard for the same, but ended up finding out she was barren. Much the same for Flare.

Mirajane and Seilah were among the few who had no children of their own; rather, they played aunts for the avalanche of toddlers. The Etherious in particular found her calling in child-rearing, having all but taken over the local orphanage.

Even so, she could still see the remains of the city that once was. Rebuilding Magnolia to its old size alone would take a lot longer than just three years. But Fairy Tail was undeterred. This was their home, no matter what.

By herself, Priscilla lamented the fact they would all turn to dust before long. Their short lives would end, leaving her alone. The prospect scared her a scant few years ago, but by now she realised it was alright. A life well lived was all they needed. It was all she needed of them. In Priscilla's perfect memory, they would live forever; every generation, every single person, until the life-giving sun fell dark for good and beyond.

"Do Fairies have tails?" she mused idly on her trek down the hill. The question with which Fairy Tail once began. Never answered, an unending journey. "I wonder about that." Perhaps she would one day meet a fairy. But where Priscilla was concerned, the journey would never truly end.

She still wept for those flowers plucked too soon. She still raged about the myriad of beings and people who sought to harm such wonderful people. Within her welled an iron determination to craft them a home that would last eternal. And so Priscilla descended the mountainous hill, striding toward the new center of town. No one paid her much mind, unaware of the momentous decision they were about to witness.

Scraping a smattering of dust off the scales on her forehead, Priscilla spread it. The tiniest bit of herself was allowed to spread across the earth. To join with it, become one. Her nature took hold of the area, forming new life in the soil beneath all this cobblestone. The seed had been set. In time an archtree would begin to rise and claim the heavens. Before her mind's eye she saw a sprawling city reach through its entire length.

Nothing would stop her, no matter who or what.

While the Everlasting went about her plans, the rest of Earthland was not idle. The absence of Emperor Spriggan had thrown Alvarez into civil war. The realm beyond the sea would eventually splinter into a number of feudal states, much like Ishgar still was.

These news were shared over a bottle of berry whine by two ancient men. Both now gray and fragile, they still smiled. Precht Gaebolg and Warrod Sequen would die soon; even magic could not keep them going forever. But as Warrod himself summarised: "We had a good run. Now it's time for the next adventure. Do you think Yuri waited for us on the other side?"

"Knowing him, he will complain what took us so long," Precht joked back.

Meanwhile, Flare quietly stood before the cold shrine her once home was built around. The pain never truly left, but it grew easier to bear over time. She leaned faintly against her partner, Totomaru the fire wizard. When the two of them realised their feelings for each other, neither knew.

Much like them, Ultear and Meredy continued to travel the lands. Only they had a sisterly bond instead, slowly casting away the shackles of a life spent in darkness.

Erza lived in Magnolia once more, though most of her time was spent teaching. Her friends Ciaran and Quelana spent most of their remaining lives traveling. Meanwhile, Quelaan struck up a friendship with Dusk and soon found herself a friend and companion. Kalameet was much the same, having stayed even after Wendy moved out to stay with Yukino in a more concrete relationship.

And lastly, a six-year-old August followed his mother up a nondescript mountain. He did not know where they were going yet, only that it was important. He did not really care, either. Mavis, for her part, ached when they crested the final hill. She saw the unmarked grave Priscilla told her about. It was the first time she went. August stopped babbling at her, having caught the heavy mood. He obediently followed until they both stood before the spot.

Mavis went on her knees, aware there were no gods she could pray to. Rather, she smiled at the heavens. Earth rose under her will, daintily forming into a monument for 'the greatest wizard to ever live'. She did not care for how truthful the statement actually was.

"We will meet again one day," Mavis told the stone with a watery smile. Even if he could not hear her, it felt good to speak the words. "But I can not leave yet. There is still much to do."

She hugged August to her side, the boy looking up at her without understanding. "But today, Earthland has become a little better. Just like you always wanted it to be. Thank you for standing guard for so long. Your dream is finally coming true."

They stood in this spot for a long time as she told her son about his father. She was absolutely certain that he would one day be just as great, if not more so.

In the end, even to great sacrifices, all had become better.
 
Epilogue - Completed Cycle
Her world was dark. Ever since the moment a force beyond her understanding stole her away, Kyoka had only seen night.

Strangely though, her eyes still worked in the darkness. Her reserves of Ethernano slowly replenished over time, returning to the state they were upon her arrival. But it meant nothing in the endless black.

Eventually, she began to walk. Up and down colossal trees, atop pathways of branches and dirt paths beneath their roots. Her steps produced no sound, her single attempt to call out did not carry. No one and nothing reacted, so she kept wandering. Sometimes she met things crawling on the ground. People, she thought at first, but they only resembled the human form. Emaciated they were; even when Kyoka helped one up, they merely stared at her with empty eye sockets. Weak fingers pawed at her, unable to convey a desire the thing did not even know. She tried to heal them, only to realise this was their natural state. The thing could not speak or otherwise communicate. After a while it kept crawling along.

Another all but clung to her as long as E.N.D.'s tome emitted warmth to soothe her forlorn thoughts. Tears clung to Kyoka's cheeks, a constant blanket of despair weighing down every step she made.

She was alone in unending darkness. The passage of time became warped, for she needed neither sleep nor sustenance. But unless her sole remaining friend warmed her, she was cold. So, so cold.

Then she found a dragon. And not just any, but a pitch black dragon. The sleek head and occasional orange glow on his forehead identified him beyond doubt. He stood upright and still, all but frozen to the world. An attempt to speak to Everlasting Kalameet yielded nothing, however. E.N.D.'s tome earned a passing moment of interest, only for the dragon to dismiss them from his vigil. Neither being was significant enough to earn a spot in his perfect memory.

Dejected, Kyoka left him behind to stew in darkness again. Her bitter tears kept rolling, thoughts circling around the realm she was taken from. August and Mavis, Seilah, Jenny. She wanted them back so, so bad. But the path home was barred by uncountable hardship. Impossible hardship, in fact.

At some point Kyoka realised that time stood still. Nothing changed. All returned to how it once was, like the sea washed away one's footprints in the sand.

In this unchanging, eternal realm, Kyoka could live forever. Settled deep within an archtree, surrounded by pitch black, all she had to do was nothing. But she could not.

Dwelling within this static world saddened her; it hollowed her mind and soul the longer she existed in it. Nothing happened. Unless something monumental took place, nothing ever would. The mere idea was paradoxical to her, born in a world already in motion. Now she was here, the calming weight of E.N.D.'s tome in her arm. A faint heat emanated from it, warming her.

She did not want to live forever. Rather, the more Kyoka thought, she began to understand what she must do. What worth was in a world like this, if not one she gave it? A new desire began to burn within her, to give purpose to a world which had none. To give it change.

And so she began to whisper to the book, speaking for the first time in what might be days or centuries. This time her quiet words rang painfully loud in the silence. As if the world itself already knew what was about to happen. Each sentence made the tome emit more heat. Soon it glowed, flipping open to release all the power it contained.

Heat burst forth, driving away the cold. Flames spilled from its pages, breathing life into a dead world. Beautiful light shone for the first time, casting shadows that melded into the dark beyond its reach.

The kneeling figure was consumed ever so slowly, her body shriveling and fading as it became fuel. A sliver of death fell from her, flaring within the blaze. The tome in her arms became fire well and true, its remnant a mere memory of but one ray of sunlight. And from the demon Kyoka, at last, fell a tiny shard of darkness. The four flickered and flared, nourished by the fire until they all were molded to its form.

The flame burned bright, an end and a beginning.

Then from the dark they came, and found the souls of Lords within the flame.


Thank you for reading.
As an additional treat, in case you forgot: go back and check the Prologue.
 
Back
Top